Selected quad for the lemma: authority_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
authority_n apostle_n church_n peter_n 5,721 5 7.6949 4 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A13707 The trying out of the truth begunn and prosequuted in certayn letters and passages between Iohn Aynsworth and Henry Aynsworth; the one pleading for, the other against the present religion of the Church of Rome. The chief things to be handled, are. 1. Of Gods word and Scriptures, whither they be a sufficient rule of our faith. 2. Of the Scriptures expounded by the Church; and of unwritten traditions. 3. Of the Church of Rome, whither it be the true Catholike Church, and her sentence to be received, as the certayn truth. Ainsworth, John, fl. 1609-1613.; Ainsworth, Henry, 1571-1622? aut 1615 (1615) STC 240; ESTC S100498 226,493 192

There are 25 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

depend_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o a_o skilful_a lapidary_n 5._o and_o yet_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o lapidary_n depend_v of_o the_o excellent_a nature_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o stone_n so_o we_o answer_v that_o the_o church_n do_v formal_o depend_v on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o show_v she_o be_v teach_v in_o all_o truth_n and_o yet_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v depend_v of_o the_o determination_n ●_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o s._n augustin_n credam_fw-la say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v scripture_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o at_o this_o answer_n in_o effect_n you_o wonder_v that_o any_o one_o will_v have_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n to_o be_v try_v by_o any_o other_o then_o by_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n therefore_o either_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o be_v of_o s._n augustin_n mind_n or_o leave_v to_o marvel_n only_o at_o i_o since_o that_o great_a doctor_n and_o holy_a father_n do_v give_v the_o lily_n occasion_n to_o you_o of_o wonder_n now_o unto_o your_o corolarium_n that_o bad_a rhetoric_n and_o not_o solid_a reason_n gather_v out_o from_o hence_o that_o my_o faith_n and_o hope_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o spider_n web_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o seat_v on_o a_o web_n but_o on_o a_o 18._o rock_n against_o which_o all_o heretical_a persecution_n persuasion_n blasphemy_n which_o be_v as_o hell_n gate_n shall_v never_o prevail_v for_o my_o resolution_n &_o account_n of_o faith_n that_o i_o tell_v you_o i_o be_v one_o day_n to_o give_v before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o god_n be_v no_o other_o they_o this_o which_o s._n augustin_n give_v fundament_n where_o he_o say_v in_o ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la etc_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v keep_v i_o the_o consent_n and_o agreement_n of_o so_o many_o people_n and_o nation_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o church_n begin_v by_o miracle_n nourish_v with_o hope_n increase_v with_o charity_n confirm_v and_o establish_v by_o antiquity_n in_o the_o same_o catholic_a church_n do_v also_o hold_v m●_n the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o the_o sea_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n to_o who_o christ_n our_o lord_n after_o his_o resurrection_n commend_v the_o fe●ding_n of_o his_o flock_n continue_v unto_o he_o who_o at_o this_o present_a occupy_v this_o place_n and_o last_o do_v keep_v i_o the_o very_a name_n catholic_n which_o not_o without_o cause_n among_o so_o many_o heretic_n this_o only_a church_n do_v so_o obteyn_a as_o although_o all_o heretic_n do_v pretend_v vam_o to_o be_v term_v catholic_n yet_o if_o any_o stranger_n do_v chance_n to_o demand_v which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o catholic_n there_o be_v no_o heretic_n so_o impudent_a as_o dare_v show_n either_o his_o house_n or_o synagogue_n and_o thus_o far_o s._n augustin_n himself_o teach_v i_o what_o answer_n of_o my_o faith_n i_o shall_v make_v before_o the_o eternal_a tribunal_n of_o god_n but_o when_o you_o shall_v come_v there_o to_o give_v account_n of_o your_o faith_n the_o best_a that_o you_o can_v allege_v for_o yourself_o be_v that_o you_o think_v &_o judge_v it_o so_o that_o your_o private_a spirit_n interpret_v it_o so_o though_o against_o the_o height_n of_o nature_n in_o very_a many_o point_n against_o all_o antiquity_n of_o time_n consent_n and_o unity_n of_o doctrine_n against_o the_o whole_a stream_n of_o holy_a father_n learned_a doctor_n and_o most_o true_a expesiter_n who_o now_o i_o pray_v you_o 5._o putt_n trust_v in_o man_n and_o make_v flesh_n his_o arm_n who_o be_v teach_v now_o by_o the_o 9_o precept_n of_o man_n who_o but_o you_o be_v lead_v by_o their_o own_o invention_n spirit_n and_o illusion_n who_o but_o you_o commit_v idolatry_n in_o worship_v the_o golden_a calf_n the_o idol_n of_o your_o own_o invention_n therefore_o i_o will_v conclude_v with_o your_o say_n take_v out_o of_o the_o psalm_n 73_o 26._o the_o roc●_n o●_n my_o hart_n who_o be_v my_o portion_n for_o ever_o preserve_v i_o and_o deliver_v you_o fr●m_v that_o s●ylla_fw-mi of_o calunustical_a profession_n and_o from_o that_o devo●●ing_n charibdis_fw-la those_o syrte_n and_o quicksand_n of_o brownisme_n and_o puritanical_a 26._o brotherhood_n where_o man_n make_v shipwreck_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o soul_n ii_o the_o second_o arg_n you_o examine_v of_o i_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o b●●e_n ●_o naked_a word_n can_v be_v a_o infallible_a rule_n or_o square_v of_o faith_n you_o propound_v it_o out_o of_o my_o write_n thus_o that_o which_o be_v difficult_a &_o include_v many_o sense_n at_o least_o to_o the_o ignorant_a can_v not_o be_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v thus_o my_o antecedent_n you_o admit_v prove_v by_o tertullian_n s._n hierome_n and_o s._n peter_n himself_o who_o place_n you_o only_o examine_v the_o other_o you_o turn_v over_o as_o you_o be_v wont_n deem_v they_o unworthy_a of_o your_o consideration_n you_o examine_v that_o of_o s._n peter_n now_o where_o he_o say_v that_o in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n be_v certain_a thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v which_o the_o unlearned_a and_o the_o unstable_a deprave_v as_o also_o the_o rest_n 16_o of_o the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o perdition_n here_o you_o except_v against_o i_o that_o i_o say_v many_o thing_n in_o stead_n of_o certain_a where_o in_o deed_n i_o cite_v only_o the_o sense_n of_o that_o place_n propound_v it_o as_o the_o protestant_n use_v for_o you_o and_o their_o advantage_n meaning_n so_fw-mi tacitè_fw-fr to_o prevent_v a_o objection_n for_o they_o answer_v here_o that_o s._n paul_n epistle_n be_v not_o hard_o but_o that_o many_o thing_n in_o they_o be_v hard_a for_o the_o greek_a copy_n have_v en_fw-fr hois_fw-fr that_o be_v in_o which_o thing_n and_o some_o read_v en_fw-fr hai_fw-mi in_o which_o epistle_n and_o whereas_o you_o object_v that_o i_o say_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o stead_n of_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o scripture_n i_o answer_v the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v very_o well_o speak_v general_o since_o the_o very_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n have_v be_v wrest_v to_o bolster_v up_o heresy_n three_o you_o say_v that_o this_o testimony_n prove_v scarce_o the_o first_o part_n of_o my_o antecedent_n that_o scripture_n be_v only_o difficult_a but_o you_o say_v it_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o scripture_n can_v be_v a_o indeficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o prove_v both_o for_o in_o what_o do_v s._n peter_n say_v that_o s._n paul_n be_v hard_a but_o concern_v many_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n as_o concern_v predestination_n reprobation_n vocation_n of_o the_o gentile_n justification_n by_o faith_n of_o which_o high_a mystery_n s._n paul_n be_v the_o chief_n and_o principal_a master_n and_o as_o for_o the_o example_n of_o the_o artizen_n you_o bring_v make_v much_o against_o you_o for_o if_o a_o unst●●lfull_a mathematician_n or_o sea_n man_n know_v not_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o astrolabe_n or_o cross_a staff_n the_o miss_v of_o a_o hair_n breadth_n in_o the_o right_n use_v thereof_o make_v he_o judge_v wrong_a of_o the_o object_n infinite_o almost_o although_o the_o instrument_n in_o itself_o be_v most_o true_a and_o if_o the_o physician_n miss_v the_o right_n do_v though_o he_o give_v the_o right_a ingredient_n he_o be_v likly_o to_o kill_v then_o to_o minister_v help_n so_o if_o a_o man_n miss_v of_o the_o right_a judgement_n &_o sense_n of_o those_o place_n of_o scripture_n touch_v predestination_n reprobation_n etc._n etc._n the_o corruption_n of_o that_o place_n be_v able_a to_o turn_v all_o the_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n that_o leave_v that_o way_n into_o his_o own_o nature_n but_o now_o here_o to_o your_o reply_n that_o not_o all_o but_o only_o some_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v difficult_a and_o hard_a though_o we_o see_v the_o contrary_a by_o experience_n since_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n berengar_n have_v stumble_v at_o the_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n viz._n this_o be_v my_o body_n yea_o they_o stumble_v there_o at_o though_o s._n john_n explicate_v also_o most_o plain_o that_o place_n when_o he_o say_v caro_fw-la mea_fw-la verè_fw-la est_fw-la cibus_fw-la et_fw-la sanguis_fw-la mens_fw-la verè_fw-la est_fw-la potus_fw-la my_o flesh_n be_v true_o meat_n and_o my_o blood_n be_v true_o drink_v for_o luther_n will_v have_v they_o one_o way_n to_o be_v understand_v ●uinglius_fw-la another_o ber●garius_n a_o other_o and_o calu●_n another_o neither_o can_n the_o paralleling_n &_o compare_v of_o one_o place_n of_o scripture_n with_o another_o r●n_v die_v this_o or_o satisfy_v the_o infinite_a difficult_v that_o arise_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o that_o of_o the_o 2._o regum_fw-la 23._o 11._o the_o field_n be_v say_v to_o be_v full_a of_o lentil_n but_o the_o 1_o parall_a 11._o 13
it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v full_a of_o ba●iy_n and_o the_o 1._o ●●eg_n 7._o 15._o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o bra●en_a pillar_n be_v thirty_o eight_o cubi●●●_n in_o length_n and_o your_o 2._o parall_a 3._o 19_o but_o thirty_o five_o math._n 1._o 8._o it_o be_v say_v that_o joram_n bega●_n qzia●_n but_o in_o the_o 4._o book_n of_o the_o king_n which_o the_o protestant_n call_v the_o second_o it_o be_v write_v that_o joram_n be_v father_n to_o ochozias_n ochoizas_n to_o joas_n joas_n to_o ama●●●s_n not_o joram_n to_o ozias_n otherwise_o call_v azarias_n mat._n 1._o &_o 3_o 16._o joseph_n be_v call_v jacob_n whereas_o s._n luk._n 3._o 23_o name_v he_o 〈◊〉_d mat_n 10_o 10._o the_o apostle_n send_v to_o pr●ach_n be_v forbid_v to_o have_v a_o ●reffe_n in_o their_o ●a●ds_n and_o yet_o s._n mark_v 6_o 8_o ba●_n they_o take_v only_o a_o staff_n or_o rod_n in_o their_o hand_n mat._n 26_o 34_o and_o luk._n 22_o 34._o say_v that_o before_o the_o cock_n do_v crow_n peter_n shall_v deny_v he_o thrice_o but_o s._n mark_v the_o 14._o 30._o say_v christ_n word_n be_v before_o the_o cock_n shall_v crow_v twice_o thou_o shall_v thirst_n deny_v i_o mar_n 15_o 25._o ●ayth_n our_o saviour_n be_v crucify_v at_o the_o three_o hour_n but_o s._n john_n 19_o 14_o say_v it_o be_v about_o the_o six_o hour_n before_o he_o be_v condenm_v by_o p●●ate_n so_o that_o you_o see_v the_o compare_v of_o place_n only_o with_o place_n often_o time_n may_v bring_v a_o poor_a man_n into_o a_o maze_n or_o circle_n except_o he_o add_v to_o this_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o the_o learned_a doctor_n exposition_n by_o who_o help_n all_o these_o seem_a contradiction_n will_v easy_o be_v salve_v now_o whereas_o you_o may_v answer_v that_o these_o difficult_v be_v in_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o not_o of_o doctrine_n &_o so_o it_o much_o import_v not_o whither_o a_o man_n reconcil●s_v these_o place_n or_o no_o i_o grant_v the_o first_o but_o i_o deny_v the_o sequ●●●_n for_o since_o you_o teach_v that_o all_o difficult_v of_o scripture_n may_v be_v help_v by_o compare_v of_o one_o place_n with_o another_o now_o when_o as_o ignorant_a man_n shall_v follow_v this_o your_o rule_n as_o a_o unfallible_a guide_n when_o they_o see_v themselves_o lead_v by_o it_o unto_o a_o contradiction_n they_o do_v not_o only_o begin_v to_o call_v into_o question_n this_o but_o all_o other_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n see_v the_o self_n same_o truth_n affirm_v the_o little_a as_o well_o as_o the_o great_a and_o as_o much_o abhor_v from_o contradiction_n of_o a_o little_a matter_n as_o of_o a_o great_a the_o second_o branch_n of_o my_o antecedent_n which_o i_o bring_v be_v that_o holy_a scripture_n have_v many_o sense_n literal_a and_o spiritual_a yea_o and_o often_o many_o sense_n literrall_a and_o many_o sense_n spiritual_a all_o this_o you_o deny_v &_o wonder_v that_o i_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o i_o answer_v that_o no_o disputant_n use_v to_o prove_v como●m●●●mes_n and_o principle_n and_o we_o use_v not_o to_o prove_v common_a 〈◊〉_d at_o most_o protestant_n allow_v of_o viz._n of_o a_o literal_a and_o a_o spiritual_a sense_n the_o l●s●_n whereof_o they_o divide_v into_o three_o member_n into_o a_o all_o g●ricell_n tropological_a &_o anagogical_a sense_n yea_o and_o not_o without_o great_a cause_n they_o allow_v of_o this_o since_o d._n august_n lib._n 11._o confess_v cap._n 26_o et_fw-la lib._n 11._o de_fw-fr ●●●●tate_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 19_o say_v also_o that_o the_o scripture_n often_o ha●_n many_o literal_a sense_n but_o you_o against_o the_o holy_a father_n hold_v that_o it_o have_v only_o one_o sense_n but_o as_o you_o answer_v appliable_a to_o diverse_a place_n time_n and_o person_n here_o i_o wonder_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v so_o consident_o hoveld_v with_o your_o own_o conc●●t_n and_o so_o carry_v away_o with_o your_o private_a spirit_n that_o you_o see_v not_o that_o which_o to_o most_o manifest_a but_o even_o as_o a_o pigeon_n that_o be_v seel_a in_o your_o soar_a spirit_n you_o see_v only_o the_o way_n at_o length_n to_o your_o own_o downfall_n though_o in_o your_o conceit_n you_o ascend_v bolt_n upright_o for_o a_o season_n but_o that_o the_o scripture_n have_v many_o sense_n we_o leave_v as_o prove_v and_o if_o to_o prove_v fit_a for_o another_o place_n now_o it_o suffice_v for_o this_o place_n to_o show_v that_o which_o you_o grant_v to_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v the_o second_o part_n of_o my_o antecedent_n for_o if_o that_o one_o sense_n have_v reference_n to_o diverse_a time_n place_n and_o person_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v very_o difficult_a &_o require_v some_o common_a help_n beside_o themselves_o to_o obtain_v their_o several_a true_a exposition_n nay_o hear_v i_o think_v you_o grant_v that_o the_o scripture_n have_v diverse_a sense_n since_o you_o grant_v diverse_a as_o it_o be_v formality_n of_o sense_n respect_v divers_a place_n time_n and_o person_n here_o also_o in_o prosecute_n of_o this_o point_n you_o seem_v to_o mistake_v our_o doctrine_n for_o we_o hold_v that_o neither_o apostle_n or_o the_o pope_n have_v dominton_a over_o our_o faith_n or_o authority_n to_o institut_n sacrament_n of_o themselves_o neither_o can_v they_o make_v what_o they_o will_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o tradition_n but_o it_o must_v be_v receive_v time_n out_o of_o mind_n by_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o that_o church_n which_o have_v keep_v her_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n from_o s._n peter_n and_o then_o saint_n aug._n in_o epist_n 118._o will_v teach_v you_o that_o insolentissimae_fw-la infaniae_fw-la est_fw-la existimare_fw-la non_fw-la certe_fw-la fieri_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la universa_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la fit_a that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o insolent_a madness_n to_o think_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v right_a that_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v teach_v beside_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o make_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o declare_v only_o that_o such_o and_o such_o a_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o that_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o almighty_a god_n guide_v he_o as_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v he_o for_o all_o this_o omit_v to_o use_v all_o humane_a help_n of_o counsel_n and_o consultation_n with_o the_o learned_a that_o though_o as_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o have_v a_o promise_n from_o almighty_a still_o to_o assist_v he_o yet_o in_o that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o presume_v in_o omit_v the_o use_n of_o natural_a and_o prudentiall_a help_n and_o mean_n he_o use_v all_o diligent_a ser●tinp_n therein_o the_o place_n of_o 15._o of_o the_o act_n which_o you_o examine_v of_o i_o where_o i_o lay_v that_o in_o the_o counsel_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n all_o be_v conclude_v with_o this_o of_o s._n peter_n the_o head_n it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o this_o i_o say_v and_o still_o aver_v make_v much_o against_o you_o for_o here_o the_o apostle_n to_o end_v the_o controversy_n in_o hand_n trust_v not_o their_o own_o several_a spirit_n but_o to_o a_o mature_a deliberation_n and_o counsel_n where_o s._n peter_n be_v h●ad_a and_o vin●eere_a though_o he_o use_v a_o apostolical_a inguisition_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v note_v in_o the_o 7._o verse_n that_o peter_n role_n up_o showing_z thereby_o that_o he_o be_v head_n and_o have_v the_o pre-eminence_n of_o place_n first_o to_o speak_v nothing_o also_o his_o privilege_n that_o the_o first_o gentill_n be_v choose_v by_o his_o mou●h_n though_o s._n paul_n be_v design_v to_o convert_v they_o now_o unto_o that_o which_o you_o 〈◊〉_d that_o verse_n 13._o and_o 14._o s._n james_n 〈◊〉_d stan●●_n all_o and_o that_o hence_o we_o may_v rather_o hold_v he_o head_n of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o do_v not_o hence_o follow_v in_o that_o s._n james_n in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n give_v his_o sentence_n nert_n for_o sure_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n barnabas_n also_o speak_v though_o their_o speech_n be_v interpose_v for_o the_o better_a declaration_n of_o the_o question_n to_o be_v decide_v and_o for_o the_o great_a confirmation_n of_o s._n peter_n sentence_n and_o though_o s._n james_n say_v in_o his_o speech_n i_o judge_v he_o do_v not_o mean_a thereby_o that_o he_o give_v the_o principal_a definitive_a sentence_n since_o he_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n follow_v and_o second_v by_o their_o suffrage_n the_o decision_n of_o s._n peter_n as_o it_o be_v plain_a in_o the_o text_n the_o whole_a assembly_n for_o reverence_n of_o his_o person_n and_o approbation_n of_o his_o sentence_n hold_v their_o peace_n the_o which_o s._n hier●m_n affirm_v say_v all_o the_o multitude_n hold_v their_o peace_n and_o 2._o into_o his_o sentence_n james_n the_o apostle_n
it_o my_o child_n &_o my_o child_n child_n that_o it_o may_v never_o be_v forget_v but_o yet_o for_o a_o ground_n of_o faith_n unto_o life_n i_o will_v warn_v my_o child_n to_o hold_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o instrument_n of_o god_n able_a to_o make_v they_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n through_o the_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n as_o paul_n 15_o say_v to_o his_o son_n timothee_n you_o say_v it_o be_v plain_n that_o the_o apostle_n 2._o thes._n 2._o speak_v of_o such_o tradition_n as_o i_o call_v humane_a in_o you_o i_o deny_v it_o &_o have_v plain_o disprove_v it_o in_o my_o former_a writing_n by_o the_o same_o apostle_n own_o testimony_n act._n 26._o 22_o 1._o co._n 14._o 37._o and_o you_o have_v not_o a_o word_n to_o say_v against_o it_o but_o shun_v those_o ancient_a apostolic_a record_n and_o betake_v you_o to_o late_a humane_a writer_n as_o chrysostome_n but_o remember_v your_o own_o word_n god_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o devil_n truth_n then_o falsehood_n the_o apostle_n show_v his_o own_o meaning_n long_o before_o chrysostome_n have_v a_o mouth_n to_o speak_v but_o if_o you_o can_v better_o see_v by_o chrysostoms_n candle_n then_o by_o paul_n bright_a sun_n behold_v what_o 41._o the_o doctor_n say_v whatsoever_o be_v seek_v unto_o salvation_n all_o now_o be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o scripture_n he_o that_o be_v ignorant_a may_v find_v there_o what_o to_o learn_v he_o that_o be_v stubborn_a &_o synful_a may_v find_v the_o scourge_n of_o the_o judgement_n to_o come_v whereof_o he_o may_v be_v afraid_a he_o that_o labour_v may_v there_o find_v glory_n and_o promise_n of_o eternal_a life_n this_o speech_n do_v far_o better_o become_v his_o golden_a mouth_n than_o your_o plea_n for_o humane_a tradition_n the_o 2._o thing_n which_o you_o take_v upon_o you_o to_o prove_v or_o as_o now_o you_o assertion_n faint_o say_v intend_v rather_o to_o propound_v then_o prove_v be_v that_o the_o scripture_n expound_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v a_o true_a and_o indeficient_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n i_o will_v ease_v you_o if_o i_o may_v of_o this_o labour_n if_o you_o understand_v the_o position_n well_o i_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o catholic_a church_n i_o trow_v you_o mean_v not_o the_o multitude_n all_o believer_n but_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n so_o i_o willing_o yield_v that_o the_o scripture_n expound_v by_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v a_o true_a and_o indeficient_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o when_o you_o come_v to_o make_v proof_n of_o your_o position_n you_o set_v it_o down_o thus_o that_o the_o pope_n definitive_a sentence_n as_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o indeficient_a rule_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n where_o all_o man_n may_v see_v your_o load_n star_n you_o pretend_v the_o scripture_n and_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o a_o man_n deal_v with_o you_o by_o they_o as_o i_o now_o have_v experience_n you_o flee_v to_o late_a humane_a writer_n if_o you_o be_v follow_v in_o they_o you_o retire_v to_o your_o catholic_a church_n ask_v your_o meaning_n by_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n with_o his_o definitive_a sentence_n as_o yourself_o have_v expound_v it_o to_o i_o he_o virtualiter_fw-la as_o 23_o one_o of_o your_o side_n say_v be_v the_o whole_a church_n all_o the_o other_o be_v but_o stale_n he_o alone_o be_v the_o man_n that_o must_v strike_v the_o stroke_n and_o if_o he_o give_v sentence_n against_o you_o i_o shall_v never_o trust_v he_o so_o you_o deal_v on_o the_o sure_a side_n for_o yourselves_o you_o intend_v rather_o to_o propound_v then_o to_o prove_v this_o point_n as_o you_o say_v that_o we_o have_v not_o at_o one_o time_n diverse_a pro●s_n together_o in_o the_o fire_n and_o now_o again_o you_o handle_v it_o by_o way_n of_o velitation_n you_o say_v &_o not_o of_o purpose_n to_o prove_v whereas_o it_o be_v the_o main_a ground_n of_o all_o controversy_n between_o we_o for_o question_v be_v whither_o god_n write_v word_n or_o the_o pope_n definitive_a sentence_n must_v judge_v &_o rule_v our_o faith_n i_o cleav_v to_o the_o scripture_n you_o to_o the_o pope_n now_o my_o ground_n be_v in_o part_n grant_v by_o yourselves_o for_o the_o scripture_n which_o i_o build_v upon_o your_o council_n 4._o of_o trent_n have_v allow_v for_o canonical_a and_o come_v from_o god_n and_o whither_o you_o grant_v it_o or_o not_o i_o have_v give_v you_o reason_n that_o be_v unanswered_a but_o your_o ground_n i_o utter_v lie_v deny_v and_o grant_v not_o your_o pope_n definitive_a sentence_n to_o be_v canonical_a but_o haeretical_a and_o will_v have_v proof_n of_o that_o you_o say_v you_o list_v not_o yet_o to_o have_v this_o iron_n in_o the_o fire_n belike_o lest_o it_o burn_v your_o finger_n yet_o in_o this_o your_o velitation_n you_o bring_v most_o of_o your_o valiant_a man_n into_o the_o field_n leave_v out_o some_o few_o casshierd_a soldjer_n and_o brave_v i_o with_o a_o great_a many_o of_o s._n peter_n prerogative_n which_o be_v indeed_o but_o a_o cold_a iron_n for_o the_o pope_n for_o though_o all_o you_o say_v for_o peter_n be_v grant_v yet_o nothing_o at_o all_o be_v say_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n more_o than_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o babylon_n you_o will_v have_v man_n think_v that_o if_o you_o have_v so_o many_o man_n in_o a_o skirmish_n or_o velitation_n you_o have_v many_o more_o against_o a_o day_n of_o battle_n but_o if_o these_o your_o velitaries_n be_v discomfit_v as_o some_o of_o they_o be_v already_o i_o suppose_v your_o armada_n will_v never_o enter_v this_o field_n let_v we_o therefore_o try_v their_o strength_n 1._o s._n peter_n you_o say_v be_v name_v first_o among_o the_o apostle_n true_a he_o be_v so_o usual_o except_o in_o 3._o or_o 4._o place_n this_o may_v argue_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n but_o of_o no_o authority_n over_o his_o brethren_n the_o 19_o first_o foundation_n of_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n be_v a_o jasper_n the_o stone_n of_o 28._o benjamin_n the_o apostle_n paul_n 5._o tribe_n will_v you_o grant_v i_o hence_o to_o conclude_v that_o s._n paul_n be_v head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 2._o s._n peter_n alone_o walk_v you_o say_v with_o our_o saviour_n on_o the_o water_n true_a and_o there_o 31._o he_o show_v his_o weakness_n more_o than_o other_o &_o be_v reprove_v by_o our_o saviour_n for_o his_o little_a faith_n do_v this_o deserve_v the_o headship_n of_o the_o church_n elias_n and_o eliseus_n walk_v 2._o through_o the_o water_n and_o shadrach_n meshach_n and_o abednego-walked_n in_o 25_o the_o mid_n of_o the_o fire_n and_o herein_o show_v their_o great_a 34._o faith_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o therefore_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 3._o our_o saviour_n promise_v you_o say_v that_o hell_n gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o he_o our_o saviour_n do_v say_v not_o 18_o against_o it_o that_o be_v the_o church_n of_o which_o peter_n be_v a_o principal_a member_n hell_n gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o 29._o any_o true_a christian_a be_v they_o all_o therefore_o heade●_n but_o hell_a gate_n if_o horrible_a sin_n be_v part_n of_o their_o strength_n have_v prevayl_v against_o sundry_a of_o your_o pope_n by_o testimony_n of_o your_o own_o record_n such_o i_o trow_v be_v not_o head_n unless_o of_o the_o beast_n apoc._n 14._o 17._o 3._o 4._o he_o be_v to_o confirm_v his_o brethren_n so_o be_v all_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o minister_n 2._o as_o i_o prove_v at_o large_a in_o my_o former_a writing_n and_o marvel_v you_o bring_v this_o argument_n now_o again_o bleed_v into_o the_o skirmish_n before_o you_o have_v cure_v any_o of_o his_o wound_n if_o you_o can_v heal_v he_o you_o shall_v let_v he_o rest_n 5._o our_o saviour_n you_o say_v wash_v s._n peter_n foot_n first_o it_o may_v be_v so_o though_o 2d_o some_o doctor_n doubt_n of_o it_o it_o be_v sure_a some_o be_v first_o for_o they_o can_v not_o all_o be_v at_o once_o it_o be_v sure_a also_o that_o peter_n show_v then_o more_o 9_o weakness_n than_o his_o brethren_n for_o which_o he_o may_v well_o have_v need_n to_o be_v wash_v but_o not_o deserve_v to_o wear_v a_o triple_a crown_n as_o your_o pope_n 6._o s._n peter_n only_o receive_v a_o revel_v promise_n of_o his_o particular_a martyrdom_n of_o the_o cross_n performance_n be_v more_o than_o promise_n james_n 59_o and_o stephen_n suffer_v martyrdom_n before_o peter_n and_o if_o the_o cross_n be_v that_o which_o must_v prove_v the_o headship_n the_o penitent_a 43._o thief_n may_v lay_v claim_n to_o the_o crown_n 7._o he_o after_o infusion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n first_o you_o say_v premulgate_n the_o gospel_n i_o will_v the_o pope_n be_v his_o successor_n in_o
will_v i_o have_v you_o ●o_o grant_v for_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o principal_a vea_o &_o the_o 11_o only_a foundation_n proper_o &_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v foundation_n metonymi●è_fw-la figurative_o among_o who_o be_v order_n 19_o first_o second_o three_o &c_n &c_n and_o excellency_n in_o grace_n but_o not_o preeminence_n of_o authority_n for_o they_o be_v all_o send_v of_o christ_n as_o christ_n of_o the_o father_n joh._n 20._o 21_o and_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v build_v upon_o they_o all_o not_o upon_o peter_n only_o ephes._n 2._o 20._o s._n peter_n headship_n you_o say_v derogate_v not_o from_o christ_n jesus_n our_o head_n since_o s._n peter_n be_v but_o subordinate_v to_o christ_n jesus_n and_o only_o of_o his_o free_a institution_n that_o institution_n say_v i_o be_v yet_o to_o show_v whereby_o peter_n shall_v be_v head_n more_o than_o the_o other_o apostle_n the_o headship_n which_o you_o give_v unto_o peter_n do_v derogate_v from_o christ_n for_o as_o the_o church_n be_v but_o 4_o one_o body_n and_o have_v but_o one_o spirit_n so_o have_v it_o but_o 5._o one_o lord_n &_o 15._o head_n christ_n who_o be_v present_a 20_o with_o his_o church_n all_o day_n till_o the_o world_n end_n walk_v amid_o the_o golden_a candlestick_o of_o his_o church_n that_o there_o need_v no_o universal_a vicar_n but_o only_o the_o angel_n of_o every_o particular_a church_n as_o the_o 7._o church_n in_o asia_n show_v apoc._n 2._o &_o 3_o but_o he_o be_v a_o head_n of_o your_o church_n and_o therefore_o i_o trow_v can_v not_o lie_v which_o say_v 8●_n that_o christ_n place_v peter_n as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a head_n to_o power_n his_o gift_n from_o he_o as_o it_o be_v into_o all_o the_o body_n for_o have_v take_v he_o into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o indivisible_a unity_n he_o will_v have_v he_o name_v that_o which_o himself_o be_v and_o elsewhere_o the_o same_o pope_n preach_v that_o if_o god_n amniver_n will_v have_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v common_a unto_o other_o prince_n with_o peter_n he_o never_o give_v but_o by_o he_o whatsoever_o he_o give_v to_o other_o thus_o roar_v the_o lion_n of_o rome_n against_o the_o lion_n 5_o of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n what_o marvel_n be_v it_o then_o though_o a_o other_o 7._o of_o your_o pope_n pray_v to_o s._n peter_n as_o to_o his_o god_n say_v ●_o jurline_v thy_o ear_n o_o bless_a peter_n prince_n of_o th'apostle_n and_o hear_v i_o thy_o servant_n etc._n etc._n acknowledge_v further_o his_o faith_n to_o be_v in_o he_o if_o these_o thing_n derogate_v not_o from_o christ_n our_o head_n i_o know_v not_o what_o can_v do_v it_o be_v no_o marvel_n though_o one_o of_o your_o canonist_n ●2_n call_v he_o our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n for_o the_o pope_n be_v peter_n as_o father_n campian_n 4._o tell_v we_o and_o peter_n as_o leo_n say_v be_v assume_v into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o indivisible_a unity_n that_o be_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v make_v a_o god_n and_o pray_v unto_o as_o a_o god_n and_o yet_o you_o will_v bear_v man_n in_o hand_n nothing_o be_v derogate_a from_o god_n or_o christ._n yea_o yourself_o in_o your_o former_a writing_n make_v he_o the_o universal_a pastor_n joh._n 10_o and_o he_o i_o be_o sure_a be_v god_n for_o he_o be_v one_o 30_o with_o the_o father_n and_o if_o peter_n be_v but_o subordinate_a as_o you_o say_v to_o christ_n your_o pope_n i_o trow_v be_v now_o superordinate_a for_o christ_n kingdom_n 36._o be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n neither_o do_v his_o servant_n fight_v he_o be_v no_o 14_o judge_n or_o divider_n of_o inheritance_n but_o pope_n be_v 9_o fighter_n with_o the_o t●poral_a sword_n and_o have_v their_o kingdom_n of_o this_o world_n as_o politik_a prince_n and_o divide_v not_o only_o private_a man_n inheritance_n but_o even_o whole_a kingdom_n depose_v prince_n &_o disturb_v state_n as_o the_o world_n have_v long_o feel_v with_o grief_n from_o peter_n primacy_n you_o slide_v along_o to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n for_o which_o have_v no_o word_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o so_o ancient_a testimony_n as_o the_o apostle_n you_o flee_v to_o the_o name_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a where_o some_o say_v the_o foundation_n begin_v but_o against_o such_o innovation_n when_o or_o whersoever_o it_o be_v hatch_v i_o allege_v the_o whole_a new_a testament_n of_o christ_n where_o 26._o angel_n and_o bishop_n of_o church_n be_v find_v of_o equal_a authority_n not_o one_o above_o a_o other_o and_o i_o think_v i_o can_v fetch_v your_o pope_n supremacy_n from_o more_o ancient_a ground_n then_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a even_o from_o dio●rephes_n 9_o who_o love_v preeminence_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o this_o ground_n be_v slabby_a and_o the_o pope_n i_o know_v will_v be_v loath_a to_o set_v his_o foot_n on_o it_o you_o proceed_v therefore_o with_o a_o general_a reason_n thus_o the_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n be_v no_o worse_o govern_v than_o any_o temporal_a regiment_n for_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o kingdom_n govern_v by_o one_o king_n mat_n 25_o to_o a_o family_n well_o govern_v heb._n 3._o to_o a_o camp_n well_o order_v ca●t_n 6._o but_o in_o all_o well_o order_v common_a weal_n there_o be_v ever_o require_v some_o visible_a judge_n beside_o the_o write_a law_n since_o there_o must_v be_v a_o supreme_a judge_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o controversy_n when_o they_o arise_v a●_n 2._o there_o must_v be_v one_o to_o explicate_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n and_o to_o pronounce_v sentence_n etc._n etc._n and_o 3._o there_o must_v be_v one_o to_o compel_v those_o that_o refuse_v to_o the_o due_a observation_n thereof_o now_o in_o the_o church_n there_o arise_v like_o difficulty_n in_o her_o law_n explication_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o saint_n peter_n successor_n endue_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o all_o difficulty_n of_o moment_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v unto_o for_o counsel_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v with_o obedience_n when_o he_o counsel_v be_v to_o be_v obey_v when_o he_o proceed_v with_o his_o powerful_a jurisdiction_n this_o your_o reason_n be_v faulty_a from_o head_n to_o foot_n the_o first_o part_n fail_v in_o compare_v together_o a_o visible_a humane_a polity_n and_o a_o visible_a hierarchy_n whereas_o humane_a polity_n concern_v worldly_a matter_n be_v mere_o visible_a earthly_a temporal_a but_o ecclesiastical_a polity_n be_v partly_o invisible_a heavenly_a and_o eternal_a those_o respect_v this_o world_n and_o life_n only_o have_v worldly_a dominion_n and_o glory_n these_o respect_v chief_o the_o next_o world_n &_o life_n have_v no_o worldly_a dominion_n or_o glory_n but_o be_v for_o the_o meek_a poor_a persecute_v for_o righteousness_n sake_n etc._n etc._n mat._n 5._o my_o kingdom_n say_v christ_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n joh._n 18._o 36._o again_o the_o ruler_n of_o the_o gentiles_n have_v domination_n over_o they_o &_o they_o that_o be_v great_a exercise_n authority_n over_o they_o but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o among_o you_o etc._n etc._n mat._n 20_o 25_o 26._o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o mind_v &_o distinguish_v i_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n be_v no_o worse_o govern_v consider_v the_o nature_n thereof_o than_o any_o temporal_a regiment_n consider_v the_o nature_n of_o it_o second_o you_o fail_v in_o apply_v to_o your_o pope_n the_o scripture_n intend_v of_o christ_n only_o for_o he_o not_o the_o vicar_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o king_n of_o that_o one_o kingdom_n mat._n 25._o he_o be_v the_o master_n of_o that_o one_o family_n heb._n 3_o 1_o 6._o he_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o that_o order_a camp_n cant._n 6._o apoc._n 19_o 11._o 13_o 14_o 16_o etc._n etc._n so_o that_o he_o that_o challenge_v these_o title_n and_o honour_n beside_o christ_n be_v antichrist_n to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o your_o reason_n i_o answer_v 1._o that_o in_o well_o order_v common_a weal_n the_o law_n be_v above_o the_o magistrate_n according_a to_o tully_n saying_n 3._o as_o law_n be_v above_o the_o magistrate_n so_o magistrate_n be_v above_o the_o people_n what_o good_a order_n may_v we_o then_o think_v be_v in_o the_o papacy_n where_o pope_n be_v above_o god_n law_n 2._o that_o for_o explicate_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n etc._n etc._n in_o well_o order_v common_a weal_n it_o be_v a_o rule_v case_n that_o princip_n he_o who_o make_v the_o law_n shall_v interpret_v the_o law_n according_a hereunto_o in_o the_o church_n the_o law_n give_v of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v above_o the_o pastor_n 24._o that_o govern_v the_o people_n by_o they_o yea_o above_o 20._o king_n &_o god_n spirit_n which_o give_v those_o law_n be_v the_o supreme_a 10._o interpreter_n of_o they_o as_o for_o outward_a order_n in_o difficulty_n the_o 7._o priest_n lip_n shall_v preserve_v knowledge_n and_o the_o people_n shall_v seek_v the_o law_n
angel_n man_n woman_n cross_n etc._n etc._n and_o you_o bow_v down_o before_o they_o whereas_o the_o similitude_n which_o god_n command_v be_v not_o to_o be_v worship_v as_o you_o do_v the_o domine_fw-la cross_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n which_o you_o allege_v show_v it_o beside_o will_v your_o pope_n take_v upon_o he_o god_n place_n and_o power_n and_o make_v what_o image_n he_o think_v good_a because_o god_n make_v such_o as_o please_v he_o why_o then_o if_o he_o have_v live_v in_o jeeroboam_n day_n he_o may_v have_v make_v a_o temple_n at_o bethel_n because_o god_n make_v one_o in_o jerusalem_n and_o set_v up_o priest_n altar_n sacrifice_n of_o his_o own_o head_n because_o god_n have_v appoint_v such_o in_o judah_n and_o now_o let_v your_o pope_n make_v new_a church_n new_a sacrament_n new_a ministery_n yea_o &_o a_o other_o testament_n because_o christ_n do_v so_o but_o for_o your_o idolatry_n they_o perteyn_v to_o a_o other_o place_n then_o this_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o every_o godly_a hart_n whither_o your_o popish_a gloss_n decree_n distinction_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o more_o dark_a and_o intricate_a than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v 105._o a_o lamp_n to_o our_o foot_n and_o a_o light_n to_o our_o path_n and_o as_o for_o your_o council_n and_o father_n to_o who_o so_o often_o you_o flee_v for_o help_v when_o holy_a scripture_n fail_v you_o they_o be_v so_o cross_a and_o intricate_a in_o themselves_o and_o one_o to_o another_o that_o the_o pope_n with_o all_o his_o guard_n can_v never_o yet_o neither_o ever_o wilbe_n able_a to_o reconcile_v they_o your_o mr._n cardinal_n bellarmine_n use_v they_o as_o man_n do_v counter_n that_o sometime_o stand_v for_o pound_n sometime_o for_o half_a penny_n so_o he_o sometime_o allow_v the_o doctor_n sometime_o dismiss_v they_o as_o err_v from_o the_o truth_n yet_o you_o to_o brave_v your_o cause_n muster_v their_o name_n who_o virtue_n you_o do_v not_o imitate_v you_o much_o 114._o blame_v i_o as_o for_o wilful_a error_n in_o cite_v card._n bellarmine_n write_n as_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o pope_n bear_v with_o i_o i_o know_v not_o that_o your_o cardinal_n have_v a_o private_a spirit_n differ_v from_o your_o pope_n and_o bear_v part_n of_o the_o blame_n with_o i_o yourself_o that_o refer_v i_o in_o your_o former_a writing_n to_o answer_n bellarmine_n your_o master_n unto_o my_o proof_n from_o 1_o cor._n 4._o 1._o that_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v dispenser_n of_o god_n mystery_n as_o well_o as_o peter_n &_o so_o other_o bishop_n now_o as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n you_o answer_v 71._o they_o be_v all_o alike_o in_o power_n of_o order_n but_o not_o of_o jurisdiction_n this_o your_o distinction_n i_o deny_v and_o in_o my_o former_a 81._o write_n disprove_v it_o and_o you_o bring_v not_o neither_o can_v bring_v any_o word_n of_o god_n to_o confirm_v it_o and_o therefore_o as_o your_o manner_n in_o such_o exigent_n be_v you_o flee_v to_o humane_a authority_n now_o i_o grant_v that_o your_o pope_n throne_n be_v from_o man_n or_o from_o the_o dragon_n 2._o if_o you_o will_n but_o god_n word_n say_v a_o man_n can_v receive_v nothing_o unless_o it_o be_v give_v he_o from_o heaven_n john_n 3._o 27._o from_o this_o you_o 115._o pass_v to_o act._n 15._o afterward_o you_o 80._o go_v back_o again_o to_o other_o thing_n that_o in_o order_n be_v before_o i_o answer_v twice_o your_o reason_n from_o that_o scripture_n show_v how_o you_o constreyn_a it_o beyond_o all_o reason_n yet_o the_o 3._o time_n you_o press_v it_o thus_o from_o v_o 6._o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_n assible_v you_o note_v it_o against_o we_o that_o will_v you_o say_v have_v all_o man_n to_o give_v their_o voice_n and_o be_v present_a in_o council_n i_o answer_v in_o v_o 4._o it_o be_v show_v they_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_n in_o v_o 12._o it_o be_v say_v all_o the_o multitude_n keep_v silence_n in_o v_o 22._o it_o be_v say_v it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o apostle_n &_o ancient_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o send_v etc._n etc._n in_o v_o 23._o the_o letter_n be_v thus_o write_v the_o apostle_n ancient_n and_o the_o brethren_n unto_o the_o brethren_n etc._n etc._n &_o v_o 25._o it_o seem_v good_a to_o we_o when_o we_o be_v come_v together_o with_o one_o accord_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o do_v manifest_a that_o the_o people_n be_v present_a and_o not_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_n only_o as_o you_o from_o a_o usual_a figurative_a synecdoche_n speech_n in_o v_o 6._o mistake_v will_v collect_v from_o v_o 7._o you_o 73._o gather_v that_o when_o there_o be_v make_v a_o great_a disputation_n peter_n rise_v up_o and_o speak_v by_o his_o authority_n compose_v that_o great_a dispuration_n that_o be_v settle_v the_o height_n of_o their_o difference_n which_o argue_v superiority_n and_o eftsoon_o you_o press_v this_o word_n great_a disputation_n for_o peter_n rise_v up_o be_v before_o prove_v to_o be_v but_o a_o staff_n of_o reed_n for_o the_o pope_n i_o answer_v you_o dally_v with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n unsufferable_o the_o argument_n if_o it_o will_v help_v you_o shall_v be_v this_o whosoever_o in_o a_o council_n when_o there_o be_v great_a disputation_n rise_v up_o &_o speak_v he_o be_v head_n of_o that_o council_n yea_o and_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o peter_n in_o a_o council_n when_o there_o be_v great_a disputation_n rise_v up_o and_o speak_v therefore_o he_o be_v head_n i_o deny_v your_o first_o proposition_n as_o strain_a against_o scripture_n and_o light_n of_o reason_n and_o i_o will_v pray_v you_o in_o sooth_n to_o answer_v whither_o in_o the_o many_o contentious_a council_n which_o have_v be_v since_o the_o apostle_n day_n there_o have_v not_o be_v sundry_a man_n that_o rise_v up_o and_o speak_v when_o there_o be_v great_a disputation_n and_o whither_o they_o be_v all_o head_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o that_o which_o you_o add_v of_o peter_n compose_v the_o great_a disputation_n by_o his_o authority_n be_v not_o of_o the_o text_n but_o a_o gloss_n of_o your_o private_a spirit_n your_o 7●_n extenuate_n of_o the_o apostle_n james_n his_o authority_n who_o speak_v last_o and_o give_v krino_n judgement_n or_o sentence_n v_o 19_o show_v how_o partial_a you_o be_v for_o s._n peter_n but_o i_o will_v cease_v from_o answer_v word_n of_o wound_n let_v he_o that_o read_v that_o scripture_n judge_n whither_o of_o the_o two_o have_v the_o chief_a place_n your_o exception_n 116._o that_o it_o be_v not_o say_v peter_n speak_v those_o word_n rise_v but_o when_o he_o be_v rise_v as_o if_o you_o will_v put_v a_o cushion_n under_o he_o to_o sit_v down_o again_o be_v altogether_o unworthy_a to_o be_v answer_v for_o beside_o that_o the_o very_a same_o speech_n be_v use_v of_o gamaliel_n as_o i_o tell_v you_o in_o act._n 5_o 34._o you_o may_v even_o as_o well_o say_v that_o peter_n go_v not_o to_o joppa_n rise_v but_o when_o he_o be_v rise_v act._n 9_o 39_o and_o that_o peter_n be_v send_v to_o go_v 20._o to_o cornelius_n and_o paul_n to_o go_v 10._o to_o damascus_n not_o when_o they_o be_v rise_v but_o when_o they_o be_v rise_v see_v there_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o anastas_n word_n and_o phrase_n use_v in_o all_o these_o and_o sundry_a other_o like_a place_n but_o such_o traditional_a exposition_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v your_o church_n fain_o to_o use_v for_o want_n of_o better_a to_o bolster_v up_o her_o preeminence_n gamaliel_n you_o 78._o say_v speak_v rather_o as_o a_o friend_n then_o as_o a_o judge_n as_o a_o cardinal_n in_o the_o pope_n conclavi_fw-la rather_o than_o as_o a_o pope_n be_v it_o so_o yet_o he_o 34._o rise_v up_o i_o trow_v when_o he_o speak_v so_o then_o rise_v up_o to_o speak_v be_v no_o proof_n of_o superiority_n and_o you_o may_v have_v spare_v this_o strife_n about_o your_o frivolous_a reason_n yet_o from_o act._n 13._o 16._o you_o 117._o will_v gather_v by_o paul_n rise_v up_o in_o the_o synagogue_n that_o he_o be_v chief_n preacher_n well_o let_v your_o argument_n from_o rise_v to_o speak_v be_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o pope_n conclavi_fw-la for_o to_o prove_v his_o preeminence_n if_o need_v be_v to_o speak_v in_o a_o church_n as_o paul_n do_v in_o that_o synagogue_n you_o bethink_v you_o and_o turn_v 80._o back_o to_o your_o other_o pervered_a place_n of_o 2._o pet._n 1._o 20._o cite_v as_o you_o pretend_v by_o you_o thus_o no_o prophesy_n be_v make_v by_o private_a interpretation_n which_o you_o say_v i_o call_v and_o do_v not_o prove_v a_o bastard_n phrase_n i_o answer_v you_o twice_o cite_v it_o private_a spirit_n interpretation_n and_o have_v write_v it_o so_o this_o three_o time_n but_o blot_v out_o the_o
writing_n yea_o you_o may_v tradition_n better_o have_v scamn_v first_o and_o answer_v that_o place_n cite_v by_o i_o out_o of_o h●l●_n s._n chrysost_o on_o the_o 2._o of_o the_o thess._n oratione_fw-la 4._o stand_v and_o keep_v your_o tradition_n where_o the_o holy_a father_n say_v it_o be_v plain_a the_o holy_a father_n do_v not_o deliver_v all_o thing_n up_o ●●istle_n but_o many_o thing_n without_o writing_n and_o those_o thing_n ●1_n also_o be_v worth●_n of_o faith_n and_o s._n chrysost_o say_v est_fw-la traditio_fw-la nihil_fw-la qu●ras_fw-la amp●ius_fw-la which_o word_n be_v so_o plain_n that_o they_o make_v or_o jewel_n to_o say_v they_o be_v word_n unworthy_a so_o h●lp_v a_o father_n and_o that_o s._n ambrose_n do_v approve_v of_o tradition_n be_v plain_a out_o of_o his_o 34_o sermon_n on_o lent_n where_o he_o reprove_v those_o that_o will_v keep_v certain_a day_n after_o lent_n when_o this_o after_o f●st_n be_v neither_o as_o the_o feast_n of_o lent_n neither_o deliver_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o antestor_n so_o that_o we_o see_v if_o we_o shall_v but_o give_v mr._n h._n a._n the_o s●●cons_n place_n but_o to_o put_v oil_n into_o our_o lamp_n he_o will_v add_v his_o dust_n and_o ask_v to_o quench_v it_o rather_o 〈◊〉_d contemn_v still_o as_o he_o do_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o term_v their_o authority_n produce●_n against_o he_o dust_n and_o ash_n 17._o mr._n henry_n aynsworth_n object_n against_o i_o that_o i_o have_v turn_v over_o his_o three_o and_o four_o argument_n o●_n reason_n deny_v they_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o they_o be_v cite_v for_o i_o answer_v i_o poss_v they_o over_o but_o see_v here_o mr_n ●_o a._n have_v turn_v they_o off_o the_o ladder_n to_o their_o last_o destiny_n not_o show_v that_o they_o prove_v aught_o what_o he_o intend_v by_o they_o we_o may_v suppose_v his_o reason_n be_v wound_v to_o death_n in_o the_o answer●●_n the_o former_a o●_n like_o runagate_n have_v forsake_v their_o arm_n that_o part_n of_o ●●●ted_v bare_o before_o but_o one_o appear_v in_o his_o likeness_n i_o hope_v ou●_n adversary_n will_v acknowledge_v or_o amend_v his_o slight_a deal_n herein_o 18._o the_o second_o part_n that_o jam_fw-la to_o prove_v be_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n 16._o be_v not_o only_o the_o write_a word_n but_o joint_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n tradition_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n counsel_n and_o father_n be_v the_o ultimate_a decyder_n of_o all_o matter_n of_o controve●ste_n this_o i_o prove_v first_o thus_o that_o which_o be_v the_o total_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n before_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n may_v be_v well_o the_o partial_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n after_o where_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n do_v not_o sufficient_o e●●ress●_n divers_a mystery_n of_o we_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o tradition_n be_v a_o sufficient_a yea_o and_o the_o total_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n till_o moses_n time_n the_o first_o 〈◊〉_d in_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n go_v tradition_n now_o together_o with_o the_o write_a word_n be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n my_o major_n through_o out_o this_o whole_a tract_n shall_v be_v prove_v my_o minor_a be_v grant_v by_o mr_n h._n a._n 20._o second_o not_o only_o before_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n man_n we●●_n whole_o direct_v by_o the_o month_n of_o tradition_n but_o after_o also_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o deut._n 3●_n verse_n 7._o ask_v thy_o fatner_n and_o they_o shall_v annantiate_v unto_o thou_o ask_v thy_o ancestor_n and_o they_o shall_v tell_v thou_o showing_z that_o of_o many_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v we_o shall_v depend_v of_o the_o instruction_n of_o our_o ancestor_n for_o in_o the_o word_n young_a 〈◊〉_d diatory_n before_o that_o be_v imply_v co●●ra_fw-la generationes_fw-la singulas_fw-la and_o psal._n 43_o 1._o oh_o lord_n we_o have_v hear_v with_o our_o ear_n our_o father_n have_v 〈◊〉_d unto_o we_o that_o which_o thou_o have_v wrought_v in_o their_o day_n and_o in_o the_o ancient_n day_n prov_n 8_o 1._o hear_v oh_o son_n the_o discipline_n of_o thy_o father_n and_o do_v not_o leave_v the_o law_n of_o thy_o mother_n isa._n 38_o 19_o the_o father_n shall_v make_v know_v tradit_fw-la to_o his_o son_n this_o truth_n where_o truth_n &_o discipline_n show_v rather_o matter_n of_o discipline_n and_o doctrine_n than_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o mr_n h._n a._n will_v interpret_v and_o jere._n 6_o 16._o stand_v upon_o the_o way_n and_o see_v &_o ask_v of_o the_o ancient_a path_n what_o be_v the_o right_a way_n and_o walk_v in_o it_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v rest_n unto_o your_o soul_n which_o be_v plain_a there_o that_o the_o prophet_n do_v not_o only_o speak_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o to_o prevent_v error_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o doctrine_n also_o see_v eccles_n 8_o 11._o 4_o esdr._n 14_o 3._o 2_o tim._n 2_o 15._o 1_o tim._n 6_o 20_o 2._o tim._n 2_o 1._o what_o can_v be_v hence_o infer_v but_o that_o the_o israelite_n and_o christian_n be_v to_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o help_n of_o tradition_n basil._n see_v the_o holy_a father_n so_o firm_a and_o so_o frequent_a for_o this_o great_a truth_n that_o falsehood_n itself_o of_o our_o adversary_n can_v tell_v how_o to_o oppose_v see_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cite_v before_o number_n 16._o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o ●ere_z of_o our_o lord_n 80_o lib._n 3._o ●_o 4._o call_v tradition_n dive_v deposico●um_n a_o rich_a treasury_n or_o ●usrodie_n e●emens_n 〈◊〉_d lib._n ●_o strema_fw-la ●_o 4_o in_o the_o year_n 200_o say_v be_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o traditis_fw-la by_o succession_n be_v come_v from_o the_o apostle_n et_fw-la lib._n 7_o stromat_n ●_o 9_o he_o call_v unwritten_a tradition_n the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o truth_n origenes_n in_o the_o year_n 240_o in_o his_o 5._o 〈◊〉_d in_o numeros_fw-la et_fw-la tr●●t_fw-la 29_o in_o math_n teach_v that_o we_o believe_v and_o do_v many_o thing_n by_o tradition_n s._n athanasius_n in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la epi●t●te_a tu●_n say_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o answer_v to_o his_o adversary_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n &_o that_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v not_o think_v so_o s._n basil_n also_o say_v he_o can_v believe_v many_o thing_n by_o the_o unwritten_a witness_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o 2._o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o actione_n 7._o approve_v the_o authority_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n d._n ●ier_n in_o the_o year_n 390_o in_o his_o dialogue_n contra_fw-la lucifer_n affirm_v that_o for_o august_n his_o part_n if_o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n yet_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v sufficient_a and_o s._n august_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la contra_fw-la donatistas_n lib._n 7._o c._n 53_o affirm_v that_o which_o the_o universal_a church_n hold_v neither_o be_v it_o institute_v but_o be_v ever_o retain_v we_o may_v judge_v most_o right_o to_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n idem_fw-la epist_n 86._o ad_fw-la rasul_n yea_o if_o our_o adversary_n testimony_n be_v available_a in_o confirm_v a_o truth_n against_o themselves_o for_o we_o see_v how_o martin_n luther_n in_o his_o luther_n lypsick_a disp_n submit_v himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n and_o in_o his_o epist_n ad_fw-la marchion●●_n brandeburg_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o his_o second_o in_o german_a language_n folio_n 2_o 3._o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v it_o be_v a_o horrible_a thing_n to_o hear_v or_o say_v that_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o uniform_a testimony_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n that_o from_o above_o a_o thousand_o with_o uniform_a consent_n she_o have_v keep_v john_n calvin_n in_o his_o book_n against_o pig●●ius_n calv._n brag_o but_o with_o dissimulation_n affirm_v that_o he_o will_v not_o refuse_v the_o trial_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o warrant_n of_o tradition_n phil._n melancthon_n in_o his_o epist_n ad_fw-la fr●der_n myream_n de_fw-fr locis_fw-la veteris_fw-la theol_n de_fw-la caena_fw-la domini_fw-la affirm_v that_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a to_o depart_v from_o the_o consent_n melinc_fw-la of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la johannem_fw-la cratonem_fw-la u●●tatista_fw-la he_o confess_v that_o doubt_n in_o a_o man_n conscience_n be_v a_o torturer_n and_o that_o the_o universal_a consent_n of_o doctrine_n must_v prevail_v for_o confirm_v of_o a_o truth_n and_o he_o grant_n that_o the_o best_a master_n be_v irenae_n we_o tertullian_n and_o s._n augustin_n that_o have_v leave_v many_o monument_n of_o truth_n for_o we_o to_o who_o they_o do_v adjoyne_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o learned_a the_o consent_n of_o the_o apostolical_a church_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o affirm_v they_o deduce_v from_o the_o
though_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o elias_n do_v think_v himself_o leave_v alone_o in_o israel_n yet_o almighty_a god_n do_v answer_v he_o i_o will_v leave_v 7._o thousand_o man_n in_o israel_n that_o have_v not_o bow_v their_o knee_n to_o b●al_v 50._o i_o answer_v that_o isaiah_n the_o prophet_n in_o his_o first_o chapter_n do_v use_v the_o self_n same_o fi●ure_n of_o synecdoche_n also_o the_o self_n same_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v use_v the_o 4._o ●eg_n 21._o for_o manasses_n himself_o do_v repent_v and_o redeem_v m●nn_n and_o many_o be_v never_o seduce_v so_o understand_v that_o also_o of_o the_o prophet_n here_o 51._o that_o of_o which_o azarias_n do_v prophetise_v 2_o paral._n 15._o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o israelite_n that_o be_v dificient_a and_o not_o of_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v constant_a i_o grant_v also_o that_o at_o the_o come_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o church_n be_v but_o a_o little_a one_o yet_o i_o say_v it_o be_v preserve_v in_o marie_n joseph_n zacharie_n elizabeth_n and_o anna_n the_o prophetess_n in_o just_a simeon_n and_o the_o pastor_n 52._o that_o of_o daniel_n the_o 9_o the_o host_n and_o sacrifice_n shall_v fail_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o destruction_n of_o hierusal●m_n and_o the_o c●●●ing_n of_o the_o jewish_a sacrifice_n luk._n 18._o our_o saviour_n do_v not_o absolute_o speak_v of_o faith_n but_o of_o a_o external_a faith_n and_o of_o a_o excellent_a faith_n 2_o thes._n 2._o be_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o particular_a depart_n of_o antichrist_n and_o his_o ●rew_n from_o the_o church_n and_o so_o by_o these_o ground_n to_o the_o usual_a objection_n against_o the_o perpetual_a visibilitie_n of_o god_n church_n we_o may_v answer_v any_o thing_n that_o have_v be_v or_o may_v be_v produce_v 53._o yet_o to_o confirm_v this_o truth_n with_o one_o short_a reason_n i_o argue_v thus_o visible_a this_o church_n of_o god_n if_o it_o must_v be_v invisible_a either_o it_o must_v begin_v to_o be_v invisible_a in_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n or_o in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n in_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n there_o be_v no_o opposition_n to_o make_v her_o invisible_a in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n no_o body_n can_v persecute_v a_o invisible_a thing_n 54._o now_o whereas_o you_o say_v you_o show_v how_o the_o labyrinth_n of_o my_o religion_n lead_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o centre_n of_o our_o circle_n true_a it_o be_v i_o say_v the_o ultimate_a resolution_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v resolve_v into_o the_o veracitie_n of_o god_n reveal_v as_o into_o the_o formal_a caus●_n and_o into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o into_o the_o apply_v ●ause_n and_o i_o be_o glad_a you_o have_v tra●ed_v i_o not_o to_o your_o heretical_a quicksand_n but_o to_o s._n peter_n rock_n 55._o and_o that_o you_o may_v see_v the_o resolution_n of_o my_o religion_n be_v no_o other_o but_o that_o of_o s._n cyprian_a lib_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la eccles._n where_o he_o compare_v ●ou_fw-mi cypr._n in_o regard_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o beam_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o sun_n as_o bough_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o tree_n as_o a_o river_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o fountayn_v so_o that_o he_o conclude_v he_o that_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n he_o must_v needs_o vanish_v fade_v and_o dry_v up_o in_o that_o they_o lack_v their_o origin_n by_o which_o all_o unity_n be_v preserve_v 55._o i_o give_v you_o 2_o or_o three_o instance_n to_o show_v how_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v in_o a_o divers_a kind_n depend_v of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o dep●●_n word_n of_o god_n as_o we_o prove_v the_o self_n same_o a_o priori_fw-la et_fw-la a_o posteriori_fw-la the_o operation_n of_o the_o stone_n or_o herb_n depend_v of_o the_o skill_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o herbalist_n and_o lapidary_n and_o their_o skill_n and_o knowledge_n depend_v of_o the_o innate_a and_o inward_a propriety_n of_o the_o stone_n and_o herb_n for_o neither_o can_v have_v his_o effect_n without_o mutual_a help_n of_o both_o except_o chance_v which_o be_v no_o regular_a action_n be_v the_o apply_o and_o so_o i_o take_v you_o have_v thalk_v yourself_o a_o way_n to_o a_o ridiculous_a build_n without_o foundation_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v anon_o 56._o you_o answer_v nothing_o to_o this_o but_o that_o i_o prove_v out_o of_o natural_a philosophy_n as_o though_o divinity_n though_o it_o excel_v be_v not_o concordant_a to_o natural_a reason_n whereas_o we_o can_v believe_v nothing_o that_o we_o see_v imply_v by_o the_o light_n of_o natural_a reason_n 57_o to_o the_o place_n that_o you_o object_n of_o the_o 1._o of_o timoth._n 1_o 3._o rather_o prove_v against_o you_o then_o make_v for_o you_o for_o it_o show_v all_o the_o while_n that_o she_o do_v not_o reach_v otherwise_o to_o the_o church_n she_o remain_v sound_a and_o that_o which_o you_o cite_v 1._o tim_n 3_o &_o 15._o will_v make_v you_o trust_z salve_n if_o you_o do_v daily_o consider_v it_o for_o there_o he_o warn_v she_o that_o she_o may_v conform_v her_o conversation_n to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n and_o though_o the_o text_n say_v in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n yet_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o the_o particular_a church_n that_o must_v have_v reference_n to_o that_o place_n as_o we_o shall_v prove_v hereafter_o where_o s._n peter_n do_v establish_v his_o chair_n joh._n 14_o 16._o mat._n 16._o math._n 28_o ephes._n 4_o joh._n 17._o luc._n 22._o psal._n 2._o eph●s_n 2._o 58._o when_o you_o seem_v to_o draw_v out_o of_o my_o speech_n that_o i_o deny_v for_o my_o witness_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v your_o error_n and_o fraud_n for_o i_o hold_v god_n that_o which_o be_v teach_v out_o of_o these_o place_n 1_o cor_n 2._o 10_o 11._o job._n 28_o 2_o 13_o 22._o etc._n etc._n to_o signify_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v the_o church_n in_o all_o truth_n and_o her_o member_n with_o reference_n to_o she_o and_o my_o private_a spirit_n i_o ought_v not_o to_o follow_v so_o that_o if_o i_o may_v be_v your_o pilot_n i_o will_v save_v you_o from_o that_o bottomless_a gulf_n that_o ghaspe_v to_o receive_v your_o erroneous_a soul_n 59_o st._n augustine_n authority_n you_o let_v slip_v deny_v he_o a_o fit_a master_n to_o follow_v you_o say_v he_o may_v retractate_n this_o but_o neither_o you_o do_v nor_o can_v show_v that_o he_o do_v retractate_n it_o 60._o as_o for_o s._n augustine_n opposition_n to_o s._n hierome_n it_o be_v in_o some_o small_a matter_n and_o not_o in_o a_o matter_n define_v up_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n 61._o my_o second_o argument_n be_v this_o in_o substance_n major_n that_o which_o be_v hard_a and_o for_o occur_v place_n almost_o inexplicable_a can_v be_v to_o the_o rud_z &_o ignorant_a at_o least_o a_o certain_a ground_n of_o faith_n mmor_fw-la but_o the_o scripture_n of_o themselves_o be_v thus_o conclusion_n go_v the_o scripture_n by_o themselves_o can_v not_o be_v a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n of_o say_v to_o the_o ignorant_a and_o rude_a at_o least_o 62._o my_o major_a proposition_n be_v most_o certain_a for_o a_o rule_n must_v be_v know_v and_o certain_a and_o more_o fit_a to_o our_o capacity_n to_o be_v conceive_v then_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v rule_v and_o certefied_a thereby_o 63._o my_o mmor_n also_o i_o prove_v both_o in_o regard_n of_o many_o seem_a contradiction_n of_o the_o hebraime_n nature_n of_o thing_n therein_o contain_v be_v high_a mystery_n 64._o in_o answer_v of_o this_o argument_n you_o say_v some_o thing_n be_v hard_a in_o the_o scripture_n i_o prove_v this_o difficulty_n and_o hardness_n be_v in_o matter_n principal_a matter_n which_o i_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o second_o of_o s._n peter_n 3._o 16._o our_o most_o dear_a brother_n paul_n according_a to_o his_o wisdom_n give_v h●m_n have_v write_v to_o you_o as_o also_o in_o all_o his_o epistle_n speak_v of_o they_o in_o these_o thing_n in_o which_o be_v certain_a thing_n hard_a which_o the_o unlearned_a &_o unstable_a deprave_v as_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o th●_n scripture_n to_o their_o own_o destructio_fw-la hence_o be_v gather_v that_o not_o on_o lie_v the_o place_n of_o s._n p●ul_a touch_v vocation_n justification_n sanctification_n predestination_n and_o ●●pr●bation_n in●●p●icating_v which_o point_v s._n paul_n be_v most_o frequent_a but_o also_o any_o other_o place_n be_v subject_a to_o be_v deprave_v as_o the_o word_n imply_v as_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o s._n august_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la et_fw-la operibus_fw-la c._n 14_o show_v that_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a matter_n they_o do_v deprave_v be_v about_o justify_v by_o faith_n and_o i_o show_v you_o here_o as_o err_v a_o little_a
know_v that_o of_o old_a day_n god_n among_o we_o choose_v that_o the_o gentile_n by_o my_o mouth_n shall_v hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o believe_v in_o which_o chapter_n first_o we_o may_v note_v by_o the_o way_n verse_n 6._o that_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_n assemble_v to_o consider_v of_o this_o word_n which_o place_n ●onfutes_v your_o proceed_n that_o will_v have_v all_o man_n to_o give_v their_o voice_n and_o to_o be_v present_a in_o council_n which_o be_v the_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_n and_o not_o of_o many_o other_o though_o holy_a man_n that_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n according_a to_o that_o of_o deut._n 17._o malach._n 2._o agge_n 1_o 2_o lur._n 10._o 16._o where_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v say_v to_o settle_v that_o which_o be_v hard_o difficult_a &_o doubtful_a must_v keep_v the_o law_n must_v be_v hear_v as_o god_n 73._o 2._o i_o note_v the_o 7._o verse_n that_o when_o there_o be_v make_v a_o great_a disputation_n note_n each_o party_n produce_v his_o reason_n and_o argument_n for_o their_o assertion_n s._n peter_n rise_v up_o and_o speak_v by_o his_o authority_n compose_v that_o great_a disputation_n that_o be_v settle_v the_o height_n of_o their_o difference_n which_o argue_v superiority_n for_o what_o decorum_n or_o manner_n be_v it_o if_o two_o doctor_n of_o like_a authority_n dispute_v the_o three_o of_o the_o same_o or_o of_o less_o authority_n as_o calvin_n will_v have_v shall_v stop_v the_o current_n of_o their_o disputation_n when_o it_o touch_v the_o point_n of_o the_o difficulty_n when_o there_o be_v a_o great_a disputation_n when_o their_o reason_n as_o the_o text_n both_o not_o obscure_o note_n be_v in_o aequi_fw-la librio_fw-la unsettled_a when_o there_o be_v make_v a_o great_a disputation_n so_o that_o we_o see_v it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o great_a authority_n to_o speak_v so_o first_o as_o to_o interrupt_v the_o great_a disputation_n to_o prefix_v a_o end_n to_o firm_a a_o definition_n to_o the_o propose_a question_n 74._o as_o for_o that_o which_o you_o object_v out_o of_o the_o 13._o and_o 19_o verse_n from_o examine_v that_o of_o s._n james_n give_v sentence_n from_o the_o scripture_n show_v that_o out_o of_o your_o partial_a affection_n you_o will_v be_v content_a to_o give_v with_o calvin_n primacy_n to_o s._n james_n so_o to_o derogate_v from_o st._n peter_n and_o the_o pope_n authority_n when_o nothing_o else_o can_v be_v infer_v out_o of_o s._n james_n but_o that_o which_o s._n hierome_n epist_n 12._o inter_fw-la epistolas_fw-la aug_n inferro_fw-la &_o that_o which_o be_v imply_v in_o the_o 12._o verse_n et_fw-la tacuit_fw-la omnis_fw-la multitudo_fw-la and_o all_o the_o multitude_n hold_v their_o peace_n show_v thereby_o the_o power_n of_o his_o hieron_n decision_n and_o that_o as_o saint_n high_a infer_v s._n james_n and_o all_o the_o apostle_n do_v pass_v who_o will_v not_o then_o acknowledge_v a_o general_a authority_n in_o he_o that_o with_o his_o sentence_n compose_v different_a suffrage_n and_o motive_n 75._o that_o which_o s._n james_n speak_v verse_n 15._o and_o 16._o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o confirmation_n or_o a_o explication_n of_o s._n peter_n sentence_n first_o 15._o he_o approve_v s._n peter_n vocation_n mention_v by_o s._n peter_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o next_o he_o do_v as_o to_o win_v the_o goodwill_n of_o the_o judaize_v christian_n moderate_v that_o sense_n of_o s._n peter_n that_o will_v have_v all_o legal_a ceremony_n remove_v that_o so_o they_o may_v take_v that_o speech_n better_o at_o his_o hand_n then_o at_o s._n peter_n s._n james_n be_v their_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n he_o expound_v that_o which_o he_o think_v most_o conventent_a to_o be_v do_v and_o the_o whole_a council_n and_o not_o only_a saint_n james_n promulgate_n &_o determine_v that_o decree_n so_o that_o we_o see_v the_o speak_v definition_n of_o the_o principal_a question_n be_v only_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o prudential_a council_n to_o the_o settle_n of_o the_o business_n to_o each_o party_n like_v be_v only_o s._n james_n 76._o but_o present_o after_o to_o signify_v his_o willingness_n to_o say_v something_o he_o object_n that_o peter_n sit_v still_o will_v rather_o argue_v authority_n they_o his_o rise_n up_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o admit_v most_o true_a it_o be_v his_o sit_v do_v argue_v his_o authority_n as_o well_o as_o his_o rise_n up_o and_o s._n peter_n judicial_a and_o attentive_a hear_v the_o debate_n of_o the_o question_n till_o there_o be_v a_o great_a disputation_n and_o then_o be_v note_v to_o begin_v to_o rise_v that_o to_o rise_v the_o heat_n of_o disputation_n come_v to_o head_n and_o the_o disputer_n vehemency_n require_v a_o period_n that_o he_o begin_v then_o to_o rise_v rise_v argue_v preheminencie_n of_o authority_n and_o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o he_o do_v speak_v these_o word_n rise_v but_o when_o he_o be_v rise_v what_o have_v you_o then_o conclude_v 77._o but_o on_o go_v our_o subtle_a disputer_n to_o prosecute_v his_o great_a doubt_n and_o argue_v out_o of_o the_o 5._o of_o the_o act_n 34._o where_o gamaliel_n be_v say_v to_o rise_v up_o in_o the_o council_n of_o the_o jew_n v_o 34._o but_o here_o he_o conceal_v what_o the_o church_n distinguish_v call_v he_o a_o doctor_n of_o the_o law_n and_o so_o signify_v that_o it_o be_v his_o office_n as_o doctor_n that_o be_v cardinal_n do_v up_o in_o the_o pope_n conclavi_fw-la to_o cramine_fw-la matter_n by_o way_n of_o argument_n and_o not_o to_o determine_v and_o define_v then_o he_o conceal_v the_o immediate_a cause_n of_o his_o rise_n up_o including_z a_o far_o inferior_a office_n then_o that_o of_o the_o head_n v_o 35._o to_o command_v the_o man_n to_o be_v put_v forth_o &_o only_o a_o while_n to_o signify_v that_o he_o speak_v rather_o like_o a_o friend_n then_o like_o a_o judge_n and_o that_o gamaliel_n do_v secret_o favour_v the_o apostle_n then_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o text_n judge_n teach_v and_o note_n how_o your_o doctrine_n not_o ground_v on_o god_n and_o reason_n as_o you_o s●●●l_v come_v to_o ruin_v he_o bid_v they_o take_v heed_n what_o they_o mean_v to_o do_v with_o these_o man_n show_v that_o therea_v and_o four_o hundred_o man_n judas_n and_o his_o company_n that_o follow_v all_o perish_v and_o here_o infer_v that_o they_o shall_v leave_v to_o persecute_v they_o for_o if_o their_o work_n be_v not_o of_o god_n of_o itself_o it_o will_v come_v to_o ru●_a as_o all_o other_o heresy_n and_o sect_n have_v and_o shall_v so_o that_o we_o see_v the_o text_n cite_v by_o you_o be_v the_o pronouncer_n of_o your_o own_o ruin_n 78._o and_o that_o gamaliels_n sentence_n be_v rather_o a_o favourable_a persuasion_n than_o a_o chief_a judge_n resolution_n appear_v that_o howsoever_o he_o sentence_n be_v a_o politic_a statesman_n yet_o he_o be_v a_o secret_a favourer_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o preach_n for_o he_o do_v procure_v s._n stephen_n burial_n 20_o mile_n from_o jerusalem_n as_o b_o lucianus_z martyr_n note_n in_o the_o invention_n of_o the_o body_n of_o s._n stephen_n also_o he_o receive_v and_o nourise_v nicodemus_n when_o he_o be_v spoil_v and_o expel_v by_o the_o jew_n &_o bury_v he_o there_o by_o s._n stephen_n as_o b_o lucianus_n testify_v 79._o and_o that_o which_o you_o bring_v out_o of_o the_o 17._o of_o the_o act_n 16_o rather_o hinder_v than_o further_v your_o purpose_n since_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o as_o s._n paul_n be_v entreat_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o synagogue_n verse_n 15_o to_o preach_v take_v upon_o himself_o without_o any_o more_o to_o do_v rise_v up_o and_o he_o with_o his_o hand_n becken_v for_o silence_n show_v there_o that_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a preacher_n so_o s._n peter_n rise_v and_o compose_v their_o controversy_n show_v that_o in_o that_o kind_n he_o be_v the_o chief_a so_o that_o we_o see_v we_o have_v weave_v the_o web_n to_o entangle_v fly_n of_o your_o own_o kind_n 80._o that_o which_o you_o bring_v before_o out_o of_o the_o 2._o of_o peter_n v._n 20_o cite_v by_o i_o thus_o no_o prophecy_n be_v make_v by_o private_a interpretation_n you_o call_v but_o do_v not_o prove_v it_o a_o bastard_n phrase_n show_v that_o such_o ill_a besit_a term_n proceed_v from_o a_o bad_a conscience_n your_o gloss_n ephes._n himself_o 4_o 4._o rom._n 12_o 4._o 1_o cor._n 12_o 4._o v_o 8_o 9_o urge_v against_o yourself_o for_o though_o there_o be_v the_o very_a self_n same_o soul_n in_o the_o head_n and_o foot_n and_o in_o each_o part_n yet_o it_o work_v otherwise_o in_o the_o head_n then_o in_o the_o foot_n as_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o cheese_n of_o his_o church_n than_o his_o member_n so_o as_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o head_n to_o decide_v
especial_a grace_n that_o be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n but_o you_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o s._n 〈◊〉_d diverse_a other_o pope_n that_o you_o condemn_v have_v be_v forward_o in_o preach_v 170._o i_o infer_v 8._o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o that_o the_o first_o miracle_n be_v do_v by_o he_o you_o here_o more_o merry_o then_o serious_o answer_v church_n that_o i_o shall_v work_v a_o second_o miracle_n in_o convert_v you_o if_o from_o this_o though_o grant_v by_o you_o i_o can_v prove_v he_o head_n as_o we_o expound_v it_o i_o answer_v from_o most_o of_o these_o congruancy_n sole_o by_o themselves_o i_o do_v not_o bring_v any_o convince●ng_a argument_n but_o from_o the_o whole_a series_n of_o they_o together_o i_o do_v convince_v you_o since_o you_o can_v deny_v but_o the_o apostle_n who_o our_o saviour_n first_o name_n promise_v special_a assistance_n call_v he_o the_o rock_n first_o wash_v his_o foot_n that_o sit_v ever_o first_o first_o in_o all_o assembly_n speak_v do_v the_o first_o miracle_n must_v needs_o be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n or_o else_o all_o these_o primarie_a office_n shall_v not_o casual_o or_o common_o happen_v since_o than_o if_o you_o be_v not_o through_o obstinacy_n hinder_v you_o will_v be_v convert_v i_o admit_v that_o the_o first_o miracle_n be_v speak_v of_o tongue_n act._n 2._o 7._o 11._o but_o i_o speak_v of_o destance_n miracle_n and_o beneficial_a to_o other_o and_o in_o his_o first_o preach_v i_o show_v he_o have_v pre-eminence_n above_o other_o 171._o 9_o i_o enfer_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v head_n in_o that_o as_o supreme_a judge_n he_o condemn_v the_o hypocrisy_n of_o ananias_n and_o saphyras_n 5_o of_o act._n 5._o which_o be_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n by_o s._n aug._n judgement_n lib._n 3._o contra_fw-la epist_n parmeni_n c._n 2d_o to_o 7._o and_o that_o s._n peter_n do_v give_v the_o first_o judicial_a excommunication_n do_v it_o not_o infer_v that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n 172._o that_o which_o you_o object_v out_o of_o the_o 1_o of_o tim._n 2._o &_o act._n 13._o 11._o prove_n that_o s._n paul_n excommunicate_v some_o but_o it_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o he_o exercise_v that_o judicial_a authority_n first_o therfeor_n it_o prove_v nothing_o 173._o 10._o i_o infer_v s._n peter_n prerogative_n in_o that_o he_o first_o discover_v simon_n magus_n &_o condemn_v he_o to_o which_o place_n you_o make_v a_o outroade_a in_o object_v simony_n commit_v by_o the_o pope_n when_o you_o may_v ferth_n your_o instance_n near_a home_n 174._o after_o all_o these_o proof_n brief_o touch_v and_o congruency_n i_o infer_v thus_o all_o these_o and_o other_o circumstance_n concern_v s._n peter_n show_v manifest_o that_o s._n peter_n have_v preheminencie_n above_o the_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v rock_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n how_o they_o have_v urge_v i_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v my_o own_o judge_n but_o refer_v myself_o to_o the_o indifferent_a judgement_n of_o the_o reader_n 175._o and_o that_o this_o pre-eminence_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v only_o in_o order_n i_o have_v prove_v and_o will_v hereafter_o prove_v the_o place_n that_o you_o bring_v 28._o of_o math._n 16._o 20_o but_o that_o particular_a man_n be_v to_o be_v join_v as_o witness_n and_o that_o god_n hear_v the_o congregation_n of_o the_o church_n pray_v but_o that_o which_o you_o bring_v s._n john_n 20._o 21._o 22._o 23._o i_o can_v prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o mission_n of_o the_o apostle_n remain_v for_o ever_o that_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v as_o christ_n himself_o by_o the_o re●●_n parative_a mission_n as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o i_o 〈◊〉_d infer_v priesthood_n and_o may_v from_o the_o verse_n 25_o infer_v with_o the_o holy_a 〈◊〉_d power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o your_o place_n 〈◊〉_d prove_v nothing_o and_o if_o it_o be_v prove_v ought_v it_o be_v equallitie_n of_o 〈◊〉_d not_o of_o jurisdiction_n 〈◊〉_d 176._o and_o whereas_o i_o infer_v a_o reason_n in_o brief_a that_o the_o legacy_n of_o s._n peter_n primacy_n be_v so_o particular_o distinguish_v that_o no_o man_n can_v doubt_v thereof_o since_o his_o own_o old_a name_n be_v specify_v there_o simon_n his_o father_n name_n the_o son_n of_o ionas_n and_o his_o own_o impose_v name_n peter_n et_fw-fr cephas_n you_o say_v you_o do_v not_o impugn_v the_o privilege_n of_o peter_n but_o that_o i_o do_v impugn_v the_o testament_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o i_o have_v show_v and_o shall_v still_o show_v be_v a_o great_a untruth_n 177._o and_o that_o i_o do_v not_o impugn_v our_o saviour_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n when_o i_o make_v our_o saviour_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n when_o i_o make_v saint_n peter_n the_o ministerial_a and_o subordinate_a head_n to_o he_o i_o prove_v that_o as_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v our_o only_a father_n mat._n 23._o 9_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v say_v that_o we_o have_v many_o father_n christ_n jesus_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o foundation_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 11._o and_o yet_o the_o apostle_n be_v say_v to_o be_v foundation_n ephes._n 2._o 20._o so_o christ_n jesus_n 2_o sam._n 22._o 9_o 32._o ●_o cor._n 10._o 4_o ephes._n 5._o 23_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o head_n and_o s._n basil_n 1._o de_fw-fr paenitentia_fw-la say_v though_o peter_n be_v a_o rock_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o a_o rock_n as_o christ_n for_o christ_n be_v immovable_a by_o himself_o he_o be_v the_o light_n and_o the_o apostle_n also_o be_v say_v to_o be_v light_n 2_o mat._n 5._o 14._o he_o be_v priest_n and_o yet_o he_o make_v priest_n 178._o when_o i_o say_v petros_n either_o signify_v a_o rock_n or_o a_o stone_n you_o bid_v i_o produce_v any_o learned_a authority_n for_o it_o i_o answer_v i_o can_v produce_v many_o but_o i_o appeal_v for_o this_o time_n to_o your_o own_o conscience_n since_o christ_n speak_v mat._n 16._o in_o the_o syrick_a language_n in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o a_o rock_n or_o a_o stone_n petrus_n or_o petra_n yea_o though_o petrus_n and_o petra_n differr_v in_o termination_n in_o the_o greek_a yet_o they_o indifferent_o signify_v a_o rock_n or_o a_o stone_n as_o the_o protestant_n translate_v joh._n 1._o 42._o and_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v still_o account_v the_o rock_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n appear_v by_o that_o place_n of_o s._n august_n lib._n 1._o retract_v ●_o 21._o that_o you_o cite_v against_o i_o but_o i_o see_v in_o conscience_n you_o be_v satisfy_v of_o s._n aug._n opinion_n that_o you_o be_v silent_a and_o tertull_n the_o prescript_n orig._n homil_n 5_o in_o exodum_fw-la stus_fw-la cypr._n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la stus_fw-la ambrose_n sermone_fw-la 47._o et_fw-la 68_o et_fw-la lib._n 6._o in_o c._n 9_o luc._n every_o one_o affirm_v body_n that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v on_o s._n peter_n 179._o where_o i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v petros_n in_o the_o masculine_a gender_n in_o that_o the_o masculine_a gender_n be_v most_o fit_a for_o a_o man_n but_o that_o our_o saviour_n the_o first_o of_o peter_n 2_o 8._o be_v name_v a_o rock_n may_v well_o be_v since_o all_o that_o admit_v of_o his_o doctrine_n will_v never_o deny_v but_o that_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n &_o so_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o change_v the_o gender_n as_o there_o be_v here_o you_o tax_v i_o that_o i_o on_o optatus_n credit_n will_v have_v cephas_n to_o signify_v a_o head_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o do_v not_o remember_v it_o and_o i_o grant_v that_o i_o have_v no_o ●●ul_n in_o the_o spricke_n language_n but_o sure_o i_o either_o speak_v of_o the_o greek_a word_n cephalos_n or_o else_o intend_v to_o show_v that_o which_o be_v the_o foundation_n to_o a_o house_n be_v in_o proportion_n of_o a_o head_n to_o abodie_o so_o that_o if_o you_o grant_v that_o cephas_n to_o signify_v a_o principal_a stone_n of_o a_o house_n or_o rock_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o i_o that_o so_o it_o signify_v a_o head_n or_o proportion_n 180._o whereas_o be_v urge_v you_o seem_v to_o grant_v th●●_n s._n peter_n be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n i_o prove_v still_o to_o make_v against_o you_o for_o either_o he_o must_v be_v the_o spokeman_n or_o mr._n spring_n by_o election_n still_o where_o he_o speak_v first_o which_o election_n of_o they_o you_o can_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o he_o shall_v as_o the_o foreman_n of_o the_o jury_n or_o the_o speaker_n in_o the_o parliament_n or_o else_o be_v chief_a ever_o in_o place_n and_o speech_n he_o must_v have_v it_o by_o authority_n give_v he_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o before_o 181._o you_o seem_v to_o except_v against_o my_o brief_a
best_a mean_n for_o the_o obtain_n &_o conserve_n her_o end_n to_o which_o the_o end_n of_o the_o temporal_a be_v subordinate_a and_o this_o indirect_a authority_n of_o the_o spiritual_a power_n over_o the_o temporal_a be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n exod._n 22._o v_o 18._o deut._n 2d_o 1._o deut._n 17._o 12_o 3._o reg._n 18._o 40_o 4._o reg._n 10._o 11._o 1._o esdr._n 6._o 10_o 1._o esdr._n 7_o 26._o psal._n 105._o 34._o dan._n 3._o ●6_n act._n 5._o et_fw-la 13._o 11._o 1_o cor._n 5._o 6_o tit._n 3._o 10._o 2._o joh._n v_o 10._o which_o place_n we_o do_v not_o interpret_v so_o rigorous_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o commonalty_n as_o you_o do_v to_o depose_v he_o or_o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o kill_v a_o anoint_a king_n which_o doctrine_n we_o abhor_v as_o bloody_a a_o declaration_n of_o which_o we_o may_v give_v primacy_n that_o of_o so_o many_o antipode_n though_o they_o be_v ever_o the_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o sea_n apostollicke_n that_o ever_o any_o one_o be_v private_o or_o public_o make_v away_o but_o how_o barbarous_a your_o proceeding_n have_v be_v in_o that_o time_n to_o which_o you_o have_v not_o answer_v 191._o though_o i_o have_v prove_v before_o that_o s._n peter_n have_v pre-eminence_n of_o authority_n above_o the_o other_o of_o the_o apostle_n yet_o i_o think_v good_a to_o set_v down_o certain_a proof_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o prove_v s._n peter_n primacy_n &_o so_o also_o the_o pope_n &_o so_o then_o to_o confirm_v they_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n so_o that_o their_o authority_n cite_v scripture_n can_v ●ee_n refuseh_n math._n 10._o v._n 2._o simon_n be_v call_v first_o mat._n 15._o 6._o he_o change_v his_o name_n that_o it_o now_o signify_v a_o head_n or_o superior_a and_o the_o channg_n of_o a_o name_n i_o prove_v common_o to_o be_v mysterious_a mark_n 16._o 7._o the_o angel_n direct_v peter_n to_o go_v before_o their_o as_o there_o captain_n luc._n 22._o ●1_n he_o pray_v particular_o for_o s._n peter_n that_o his_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v he_o and_o vidde_v he_o confirm_v his_o brethren_n joh._n 1._o 42._o he_o call_v he_o cephas_n that_o be_v a_o great_a stone_n a_o foundation_n stone_n joh._n 1●_n 5._o christ_n wash_v s._n peter_n foot_n first_o john_n 20_o 4._o s._n peter_n come_v first_o to_o the_o monument_n joh._n 21._o 15._o he_o bid_v he_o 3._o time_n feed_v his_o shee●_n act._n 2._o 14._o peter_n speak_v for_o the_o rest_n act._n 5._o 4._o peter_n exercise_v first_o the_o power_n of_o excommunitation_n act._n ●5_n 7._o s._n peter_n in_o the_o council_n of_o jerusalem_n first_o give_v his_o definitive_a sentence_n gal._n 1._o 8._o s._n paul_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v s._n peter_n 192_o for_o the_o confirm_v of_o which_o primarie_n of_o s._n peter_n so_o establish_v by_o holy_a scripture_n the_o holy_a doctor_n be_v stclaire_v that_o falsehood_n itself_o can_v deny_v it_o for_o s._n clemens_n romanus_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 80._o say_v that_o s._n peter_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o faith_n be_v assign_v lacob●_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o apostle_n etc_n whe●e_v you_o see_v that_o to_o be_v the_o first_o be_v to_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n dyonysius_fw-la areopagita_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 100_o lib._n de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la nominibus_fw-la c._n 3●_n teach_v that_o st._n peter_n be_v primacy_n supreme_a honour_n &_o the_o ancient_a head_n of_o divine_n hy●●olytus_n in_o the_o year_n 220._o in_o his_o oratione_fw-la de_fw-fr consummatione_fw-la ●●ndi_fw-la call_v s._n peter_n prince_n and_o rock_n of_o faith_n and_o origenes_n in_o the_o year_n 230._o in_o his_o 5._o homily_n on_o ex●●●s_n he_o call_v s._n peter_n the_o rock_n and_o solid_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n et_fw-la ad_fw-la psal._n 1._o as_o you_o may_v read_v in_o eusebius_n lib_n 6._o ●_o ●●_o he_o call_v peter_n the_o rock_n against_o who_o hell_n gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v et_fw-fr 17._o homil_n in_o lucam_n he_o call_v he_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o on_o the_o 6_o to_o the_o roma_n he_o expound_v that_o of_o s._n john_n 20._o of_o the_o threefold_a charge_n of_o feed_v his_o sheep_n to_o be_v make_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n 193._o and_o eusebius_n alexandrinus_n in_o the_o 260._o in_o his_o homily_n of_o the_o resurrection_n expound_v those_o word_n say_v unto_o the_o disciple_n &_o unto_o peter_n he_o there_o declare_v how_o only_o to_o peter_n he_o give_v the_o key_n petrus_n alex_n in_o the_o year_n 280._o in_o his_o sermon_n de_fw-fr poenitentia_fw-la call_v peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o constantyne_n the_o emperor_n in_o the_o year_n 280._o in_o his_o donation_n call_v peter_n the_o vicar_n of_o god_n on_o earth_n and_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o year_n 325._o canone_o 39_o arabic●_n call_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o prince_n of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n s._n a●ha_n in_o the_o year_n 340._o in_o his_o epistle_n ad_fw-la felicem_fw-la call_v s._n peter_n the_o pillar_n on_o who_o of_o the_o foundation_n and_o apostle_n of_o the_o church_n and_o s._n basil_n the_o great_a in_o the_o year_n 370_o in_o c._n 2._o esaiae_n et_fw-la in_o prohaemio_fw-la de_fw-la judicio_fw-la dei_fw-la 〈◊〉_d in_o orat_fw-la 3._o de_fw-la peccatis_fw-la et_fw-la lib._n 2._o contra_fw-la eunomium_n he_o call_v peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n cyrillus_n hierosol_n in_o the_o year_n 370_o call_v peter_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n ●●●echs_n ●_o &_o 11._o he_o give_v the_o reason_n in_o that_o math_n 17._o wh●●_n the_o ●●her_a apostle_n be_v silent_a peter_n confess_v thou_o a●t_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n s._n chrys_n infer_v from_o thence_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n that_o he_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o his_o 83._o homil_n in_o math._n he_o infer_v the_o like_a ou●_n of_o these_o word_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o in_o the_o psal._n ●0_n he_o infer_v asmuch_o out_n of_o these_o word_n simon_n simon_n s●●●a●_n have_v seek_v 194._o and_o for_o the_o same_o primacy_n of_o peter_n the_o ●●●in_a father_n be_v as_o plain_a tertull_n in_o the_o year_n 200._o ●_o 21._o de_fw-la pudici●ia_fw-la on_o those_o word_n on_o thou_o i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o to_o thou_o i_o will_v give_v my_o key_n he_o it_o infer_v in_o that_o it_o be_v say_v whatsoever_o thou_o lose_v and_o not_o whatsoever_o you_o lose_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v head_n and_o s._n cyprian_n in_o the_o year_n 25●_n lib._n 1._o epist_n 8._o he_o say_v there_o be_v one_o god_n one_o christ_n one_o church_n one_o ehaire_n seat_v on_o s._n peter_n by_o our_o saviour_n voice_n and_o s._n cyprian_n lib._n de_fw-la unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cathol_a out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o s._n math._n 16._o upon_o this_o roche_z etc._z and_o of_o s._n john_n the_o 21._o feed_v my_o flock_n and_o of_o s_o joh._n the_o 20._o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o he_o show_v there_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o only_a foundation_n and_o though_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v yet_o with_o a_o mission_n subordinate_a to_o s._n peter_n and_o to_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o chair_n s._n ambrose_n in_o the_o year_n 370._o out_o of_o these_o word_n mat_n 16._o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n he_o gather_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o rock_n s._n hier._n in_o the_o year_n 380_o ad_fw-la ps_n 13_o call_n s._n peter_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n et_fw-fr in_o ●_o 16._o mat._n concord_v the_o rebuke_n of_o our_o saviour_n &_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n peter_n give_v to_o he_o he_o say_v that_o pre-eminence_n be_v only_o promise_v then_o and_o after_o his_o infirmity_n it_o be_v perform_v et_fw-la in_o his_o epist_n 89._o ad_fw-la aug._n c_o 2._o he_o say_v s._n peter_n be_v of_o such_o authority_n that_o s._n paul_n write_v he_o come_v to_o ●ome_o to_o see_v s._n peter_n and_o s._n aug._n in_o the_o year_n 400._o in_o his_o book_n quaestionum_fw-la veteris_fw-la et_fw-la novi_fw-la testam_fw-la q._n 75._o he_o infer_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v contain_v in_o s._n peter_n firmness_n that_o before_o you_o bring_v as_o a_o inference_n of_o great_a absurdity_n against_o i_o et_fw-la in_o tract_n 124._o in_o joh._n he_o infer_v out_o of_o these_o word_n unto_o thou_o i_o give_v the_o key_n etc._n etc._n et_fw-la in_o sermone_fw-la 5._o in_o festo_fw-la petri_n et_fw-fr pauli_n he_o infer_v from_o those_o word_n unto_o thou_o i_o give_v the_o key_n
god_n commandment_n exod._n 34._o 27._o &_o so_o sufficient_o write_v as_o pa●…th_v it_o be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n even_o perfect_a and_o perfect_o furnish_v unto_o every_o good_a work_n 2._o tim._n 3._o 15._o 17._o away_o therefore_o with_o your_o partial_a rule_n o●_n unwritten_a tradition_n they_o may_v not_o be_v neither_o be_v they_o any_o rule_n for_o our_o faith_n for_o no●e_n must_v prefume_v above_o that_o which_o be_v write_v 1_o cor._n 4._o 6._o but_o you_o add_v a_o clawse_n to_o your_o proposition_n th●s_v where_o the_o write_a word_n do_v not_o sufficient_o erpress_v divers_a mystery_n of_o we_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o where_o be_v that_o trow_v we_o i_o your_o assumption_n this_o clawse_n dare_v not_o show_v his_o face_n for_o there_o it_o will_v con●●nce_v you_o of_o falseshood_n if_o you_o affirm_v it_o not_o how_o frivolous_a &_o deceytfull_a be_v your_o argumet_n if_o you_o intend_v to_o assume_v it_o though_o you_o express_v it_o not_o for_o so_o elsewhere_o you_o blame_v i_o for_o not_o understand_v your_o reason_n then_o say_v ●_o by_o your_o assumption_n you_o intend_v a_o lie_n against_o the_o truth_n and_o a_o slander_n against_o i_o it_o be_v a_o lie_n against_o the_o truth_n to_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a bible_n which_o we_o have_v write_v do_v not_o sufficient_o express_v diverse_a mystery_n of_o ●s_a to_o be_v beleeve●_n if_o have_v before_o disprove_v this_o by_o evident_a testimony_n from_o heaven_n which_o you_o can_v withstand_v joh._n 20._o 31_o 2_o tim._n 3._o 1●_n 17._o rom._n 1●_n 25._o 26._o 1_o cor._n 15_o 3._o 4._o a●●_n 26._o 22_o joh._n 5._o 39_o it_o be_v aslander_n against_o i_o when_o you_o say_v i_o grant_v your_o minor_a for_o if_o this_o clause_n be_v there_o intend_v i_o do_v and_o do_v dis●●aym_fw-mi it_o your_o conclusion_n can_v be_v no_o better_o than_o your_o premise_n even_o false_a and_o fraudulent_a which_o that_o you_o or_o other_o at_o least_o may_v the_o better_o espy_v i_o will_v show_v how_o you_o wrap_v up_o thing_n in_o confusion_n and_o darkness_n first_o tradition_n which_o title_n you_o claym_v for_o your_o unwritten_a mystery_n be_v as_o well_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v as_o unwritten_a 2._o thes._n 2._o 15._o but_o you_o do_v oppose_v it_o to_o the_o write_a word_n second_o holy_a tradition_n or_o doctrine_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n be_v deliver_v always_o by_o holy_a person_n even_o as_o holy_a tradition_n or_o doctrine_n by_o writing_n be_v deliver_v always_o by_o holy_a scripture_n the_o holy_a person_n that_o speak_v be_v either_o god_n himself_o as_o to_o moses_n in_o the_o mount_n to_o job_n etc._n in_o the_o whirlwind_n or_o some_o angel_n as_o to_o etc._n abraham_n jaakob_n etc._n etc._n or_o some_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n as_o peter_n 21_o say_v ●2_n speak_v be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o abraham_n be_v 7._o call_v a_o prophet_n and_o so_o be_v 49._o jaakob_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n from_o adam_n to_o moses_n the_o manner_n of_o speak_v the_o word_n be_v also_o diverse_a as_o 2._o by_o vision_n or_o by_o dream_n or_o by_o plain_n speech_n mouth_n to_o mouth_n or_o by_o secret_a motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o you_o show_v not_o which_o of_o these_o way_n your_o tradition_n come_v only_o you_o give_v we_o a_o general_a paralogism_n which_o will_v serve_v as_o well_o to_o maynteyn_fw-mi h._n n._n or_o mahomet_n with_o their_o new_a gospel_n and_o alkoran_n as_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o new_a canon_n law_n for_o thus_o may_v mahomet_n or_o the_o familist_n reason_n that_o which_o be_v a_o rule_n heretofore_o may_v be_v a_o rule_n still_o but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n give_v by_o vision_n revelation_n and_o instinct_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v a_o rule_n heretofore_o therefore_o it_o be_v so_o still_o at_o least_o in_o part_n here_o be_v as_o good_a and_o true_a a_o argument_n as_o you_o that_o your_o logik_fw-mi will_v persuade_v as_o soon_o to_o mahometisme_n or_o familisine_n as_o unto_o popery_n now_o as_o for_o the_o person_n there_o will_v be_v no_o disparagement_n for_o mahomet_n himself_o or_o h._n n._n will_v as_o easy_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v holy_a man_n of_o god_n as_o pope_n john_n the_o 23._o who_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o council_n 12._o of_o constance_n to_o be_v a_o devil_n incarnate_a and_o as_o other_o your_o reprobate_a pope_n that_o be_v monster_n among_o man_n for_o their_o beastly_a life_n till_o their_o die_a day_n as_o your_o own_o writer_n do_v record_n and_o yourself_o in_o this_o your_o writing_n deny_v it_o not_o nor_o defend_v they_o herein_o and_o now_o i_o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o why_o man_n may_v not_o be_v induce_v by_o your_o manner_n of_o reason_v as_o well_o to_o receive_v the_o turk_n alkoran_n and_o h._n n._n his_o evangelium_fw-la regni_fw-la as_o your_o popish_a decretal_n i_o find_v no_o more_o mention_n in_o god_n book_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o west_n church_n shall_v be_v a_o divine_a person_n to_o give_v heavenly_a tradition_n then_o that_o mahomet_n in_o the_o east_n shall_v be_v the_o man_n of_o god_n you_o find_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o pope_n name_n much_o less_o his_o proud_n office_n speak_v of_o for_o good_a in_o the_o bible_n you_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o promise_n to_o peter_n mat._n 16._o and_o mahomet_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o comforter_n joh._n 16_o 7._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o unpossible_a for_o you_o to_o prove_v by_o god_n law_n as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o turk_n to_o prove_v that_o mahomet_n be_v that_o comforter_n you_o will_v have_v we_o take_v the_o pope_n own_o word_n for_o a_o warrant_n the_o turk_n will_v have_v we_o take_v mahomet_n word_n for_o a_o warrant_n the_o truth_n be_v these_o both_o with_o their_o new_a doctrine_n and_o tradition_n be_v the_o curse_n and_o scourge_v of_o god_n upon_o the_o world_n because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n therefore_o god_n have_v send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n to_o believe_v lie_n as_o the_o apostle_n prophesy_v 2_o thes._n 2._o 10._o 11._o you_o ●02_n proceed_v &_o for_o unwritten_a tradition_n cite_v some_o scripture_n deu._n 32_o ●_o ps._n 43._o 1._o &_o ps._n 77._o pro._n 1._o 8._o esa._n 38._o 19_o jer._n 6._o 16._o ecclus._n 8._o 11._o 4._o esd._n 14._o ●_o 2._o thes._n 2._o 15._o 1._o tim._n 6._o 20_o 2._o tim._n 2._o 1_o from_o all_o which_o you_o 100l_n infer_v that_o israelite_n and_o christian_n be_v to_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o help_n of_o traditio_n i_o answer_v your_o reason_n from_o most_o of_o these_o and_o the_o like_a place_n i_o have_v take_v away_o in_o my_o 72._o former_a write_n here_o you_o repete_fw-la the_o same_o scripture_n again_o but_o answer_n not_o what_o i_o say_v you_o may_v thus_o do_v a_o 100_o time_n and_o weary_a man_n with_o your_o tautology_n unto_o the_o thing_n which_o heretofore_o i_o write_v and_o whereto_o i_o refer_v you_o i_o now_o add_v all_o parent_n be_v bind_v to_o teach_v god_n law_n to_o their_o child_n and_o child_n to_o hear_v &_o obey_v their_o parent_n in_o the_o lord_n deut._n 6._o 7._o eph._n 6._o 1._o 4._o if_o this_o serve_v for_o tradition_n then_o unwrite_v verity_n from_o all_o parent_n mouth_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o oracle_n of_o god_n if_o you_o hold_v thus_o i_o pray_v you_o tell_v it_o plain_o if_o not_o then_o show_v which_o parent_n have_v the_o faculty_n to_o teach_v tradition_n and_o which_o have_v not_o 2._o the_o tradition_n which_o those_o scripture_n speak_v of_o be_v now_o write_v etc._n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o canonical_a bible_n to_o be_v read_v and_o expound_v in_o the_o church_n as_o be_v 1●_n inspire_v of_o god_n profitable_a to_o teach_v etc._n etc._n if_o such_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o your_o father_n council_n pope_n which_o the_o world_n see_v now_o write_v then_o be_v they_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v also_o scripture_n inspire_v of_o god_n as_o paul_n speak_v and_o so_o to_o be_v read_v and_o expound_v in_o church_n as_o other_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n for_o all_o god_n divine_a oracle_n and_o tradition_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n if_o you_o esteem_v your_o decretal_n of_o this_o worth_a i_o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o in_o your_o next_o if_o not_o than_o the_o scripture_n by_o you_o cite_v will_v justify_v your_o pope_n tradition_n no_o more_o than_o the_o pharisee_n mar._n 7_o 3_o 6._o 7._o 8_o 9_o 13._o that_o the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o the_o father_n in_o psal._n 77._o 44._o and_o 78._o be_v write_v tradition_n the_o particular_n in_o the_o psalm_n do_v evince_n against_o your_o too_o bold_a asseveration_n for_o the_o cast_n out_o
jam._n 2._o 14._o 17._o 20._o from_o that_o man_n fall_v and_o there_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n elect_v tit._n 1._o 1._o and_o this_o faith_n justify_v rom._n 4._o 3._o 5._o &_o 5._o 1._o and_o from_o it_o man_n never_o fall_v final_o they_o may_v fall_v into_o sin_v by_o infirmity_n but_o shall_v not_o be_v cast_v off_o for_o the_o lord_n put_v under_o his_o hand_n psal._n 37._o 24._o yea_o though_o they_o fall_v seven_o time_n yet_o they_o rise_v again_o but_o the_o wicked_a fall_n into_o mischief_n prov._n 24._o 16._o this_o be_v my_o faith_n and_o your_o contrary_a popish_a heresy_n i_o abhor_v you_o deny_v not_o 13●_n but_o your_o pope_n may_v be_v reprobate_n and_o damn_a in_o hell_n i_o trow_v then_o hell_n gate_n do_v prevayl_n against_o they_o and_o so_o the_o promise_n in_o mat._n 16._o 18._o perteyn_n not_o unto_o they_o you_o except_v the_o devil_n prevayl_v not_o against_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o define_v e●_n cathedra_fw-la yes_o doubtless_o therein_o he_o most_o prevayl_v against_o he_o because_o he_o allure_v he_o into_o christ_n 18_o place_n and_o so_o make_v he_o antichrist_n and_o if_o you_o have_v the_o mind_n 16._o of_o christ_n you_o will_v no_o more_o regard_v what_o 11._o apolluon_n the_o p._n of_o rome_n define_v ex_fw-la cathedra_fw-la unless_o he_o can_v prove_v it_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n than_o what_o apollo_n the_o d._n of_o delphos_n divine_v ex_fw-la tripod_n 4._o your_o four_o show_n from_o peter_n confirm_v his_o brethren_n be_v confute_v by_o scripture_n act._n 14._o 22._o and_o 15._o 41._o 32._o etc._n etc._n you_o now_o say_v the_o other_o apostle_n confirm_v not_o 165._o as_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n not_o 166._o as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n by_o office_n i_o answer_v neither_o do_v peter_n so_o if_o you_o add_v that_o to_o your_o wrest_a text_n god_n will_v reprove_v you_o prov._n 30._o 6._o and_o your_o humane_a testimony_n which_o you_o abuse_v also_o shall_v not_o save_v you_o you_o digress_v 165._o to_o entwite_z i_o with_o gross_a corruption_n of_o the_o text_n for_o english_n presbyteros_fw-la a_o elder_n i_o be_o loath_a to_o follow_v your_o outroade_n only_o let_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o you_o check_v herein_o your_o authentik_a latin_a translation_n which_o turn_v it_o 1_o senior_n and_o 17_o major_a nat●_n and_o in_o your_o divinity_n english_n both_o cohen_n hiereus_n a_o priest_n and_o zaken_v presbuteros_n a_o priest_n as_o if_o these_o be_v one_o you_o deceiv_v the_o simple_a with_o a_o sophistical_a aequivocation_n and_o you_o may_v as_o well_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v idiot_n because_o they_o be_v call_v idiotai_o act._n 4._o 13._o as_o say_v christ_n minister_n be_v priest_n understanding_n sacrifice_a priest_n because_o they_o be_v call_v presbyteri_fw-la 5._o you_o daily_o again_o 137._o about_o peter_n foot_n first_o wash_v as_o some_o suppose_n i_o let_v you_o alone_o with_o your_o fancy_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_v whither_o it_o be_v a_o fit_a proof_n for_o his_o headship_n 6._o so_o for_o peter_n martyrdom_n whence_o you_o conclude_v it_o be_v promise_v 168._o to_o peter_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o bold_a untruth_n the_o text_n say_v no_o such_o word_n prove_v no_o such_o thing_n 7._o your_o 7._o show_n be_v gather_v also_o from_o a_o false_a translation_n restrain_v they_o begin_v act._n 2._o 4._o to_o peter_n as_o if_o he_o begin_v which_o be_v but_o a_o guess_n you_o now_o shrink_v 169._o from_o that_o to_o the_o next_o passage_n in_o v_o 14_o etc._n etc._n where_o from_o peter_n sermon_n you_o will_v prove_v he_o head_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v a_o world_n to_o see_v what_o shift_v you_o be_v drive_v to_o the_o very_a name_n of_o they_o be_v to_o all_o wise_a man_n ridiculous_a but_o if_o peter_n for_o first_o preach_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n that_o pope_n which_o first_o leave_v preach_v be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o so_o all_o your_o unpreach_a pope_n at_o least_o be_v antichrist_n you_o grant_v again_o 138._o that_o the_o first_o miracle_n which_o you_o uncertain_o suppose_a s._n peter_n wrought_v act._n 2._o 11._o do_v not_o sole_o convince_v what_o you_o will_v &_o herein_o i_o believe_v you_o but_o i_o marvel_v at_o your_o discretion_n that_o think_v a_o number_n of_o futilous_a and_o worthless_a argument_n be_v heap_v together_o will_v persuade_v any_o unto_o popery_n unless_o they_o be_v such_o as_o be_v speak_v of_o prov._n 9_o 16._o who_o so_o be_v simple_a let_v he_o come_v hither_o and_o here_o you_o be_v too_o lavish_a of_o your_o tongue_n in_o say_v i_o can_v deny_v but_o our_o saviour_n caleth_fw-he peter_n the_o rock_n first_o wash_v his_o foot_n that_o peter_n booth_n the_o first_o miracle_n etc._n etc._n i_o deny_v the_o first_o and_o you_o can_v prove_v the_o latter_a though_o be_v they_o all_o grant_v for_o peter_n yet_o your_o apply_v they_o to_o your_o pope_n be_v altogether_o groundless_a the_o first_o 17●_n excommunication_n by_o peter_n infer_v you_o think_v that_o he_o be_v head_n before_o you_o urge_v the_o act_n which_o be_v prove_v insufficient_a now_o you_o flee_v to_o the_o first_o do_v of_o the_o act_n at_o the_o most_o this_o show_v but_o primacy_n in_o order_n which_o i_o grant_v see_v paul_n and_o other_o do_v the_o like_a but_o by_o your_o manner_n of_o reason_v whosoever_o do_v any_o thing_n first_o shall_v be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o why_o i_o pray_v you_o by_o like_a reason_n shall_v not_o those_o pope_n that_o first_o practise_v simony_n sorcery_n and_o hypocrisy_n be_v head_n of_o the_o man_n of_o sin_v you_o leave_v 174._o it_o for_o the_o reader_n to_o judge_v whither_o all_o these_o reason_n together_o show_v not_o that_o peter_n be_v rock_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n i_o also_o refer_v it_o to_o judgement_n and_o if_o your_o vain_a show_n for_o peter_n be_v not_o sound_a proof_n for_o your_o pope_n then_o he_o be_v leave_v naked_a as_o the_o heath_n in_o the_o wilderness_n jer._n 17._o 6._o i_o prove_v by_o the_o scripture_n mat._n 28._o 18._o 19_o 20._o joh._n 20._o 21._o 22._o 23._o act._n 2._o 4._o that_o the_o other_o apostle_n have_v equal_a office_n charge_n and_o power_n with_o peter_n himself_o you_o answer_v 175._o the_o place_n prove_v nothing_o and_o if_o aught_o it_o be_v equality_n of_o order_n &_o not_o of_o jurisdiction_n thus_o you_o resist_v the_o truth_n without_o reason_n it_o be_v well_o if_o you_o will_v add_v 23._o doctrine_n to_o your_o lip_n when_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n with_o like_a word_n and_o authority_n when_o the_o rest_n as_o paul_n do_v whatsoever_o peter_n himself_o do_v in_o word_n prayer_n sacrament_n censure_n miracle_n etc._n etc._n you_o bare_o say_v they_o be_v not_o equal_a in_o jurisdiction_n you_o weary_a i_o with_o your_o own_o word_n and_o repetition_n without_o proof_n see_v god_n word_n move_v you_o not_o let_v i_o try_v what_o man_n be_v will_v do_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v pr●l_o one_o of_o your_o doctor_n be_v very_o the_o same_o that_o peter_n be_v endue_v with_o equal_a participation_n of_o honour_n and_o of_o power_n be_v blame_v for_o your_o make_v peter_n head_n and_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v christ_n peculiar_a title_n you_o answer_v he_o be_v the_o ministerial_a &_o subordinat_a head_n to_o christ_n as_o christ_n be_v the_o 139._o foundation_n 1_o cor._n 3._o 11._o &_o yet_o the_o apostle_n be_v foundation_n eph_n 2._o 20._o i_o answer_v first_o god_n word_n no_o where_o caleth_fw-he peter_n the_o head_n and_o why_o will_v you_o be_v wiser_n then_o god_n second_o the_o apostle_n because_o they_o lay_v the_o foundation_n which_o be_v christ_n as_o paul_n show_v 1._o cor._n 3_o 10._o 11._o therefore_o the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o be_v build_v upon_o their_o foundation_n eph._n 2._o 20._o and_o in_o this_o they_o be_v equal_a if_o any_o excel_v it_o be_v paul_n who_o labour_v in_o lay_v the_o foundation_n more_o than_o the_o rest_n 2_o cor._n 12._o 11._o 1_o cor._n 15._o 10._o in_o this_o sense_n if_o you_o speak_v of_o ministerial_a head_n that_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n peter_n preach_v the_o head_n christ_n the_o thing_n be_v true_a but_o the_o phrase_n be_v not_o good_a it_o be_v true_a in_o paul_n also_o as_o much_o as_o peter_n yea_o &_o in_o all_o the_o apostle_n 8._o and_o thus_o all_o christ_n minister_n at_o this_o day_n minister_n and_o preach_v he_o the_o head_n which_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o but_o you_o feign_v a_o thing_n which_o never_o be_v that_o christ_n shall_v substitute_v peter_n for_o head_n in_o his_o place_n &_o absence_n no_o scripture_n tell_v
1._o s._n paul_n be_v call_v to_o his_o office_n not_o by_o s._n peter_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n gal._n 1._o 1._o 2._o s._n paul_n receive_v the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o preach_v not_o from_o s._n peter_n but_o by_o revelation_n from_o jesus_n christ_n gal._n 1._o 12._o 3._o s._n paul_n labour_v in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n more_o than_o s._n peter_n do_v 1._o cor._n 15._o 10._o 4._o s._n paul_n go_v and_o preach_v without_o so_o much_o as_o confer_v with_o s._n peter_n or_o the_o rest_n gal._n 1._o 16._o 17._o 5._o the_o gospel_n over_o the_o uncircumcision_n that_o be_v the_o gentile_n among_o who_o rome_n be_v chief_n be_v commit_v to_o s._n paul_n gal._n 2._o 7._o 6._o s._n paul_n have_v upon_o he_o the_o care_n of_o all_o church_n 2_o cor._n 11._o 28._o 7._o s._n paul_n have_v write_v and_o open_v clear_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o epistle_n more_o than_o s._n peter_n or_o any_o apostle_n 8._o s._n paul_n write_n be_v by_o s._n peter_n himself_o reckon_v among_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2_o pet._n 3._o 15._o 16._o 9_o s._n paul_n rather_o than_o any_o other_o apostle_n be_v call_v of_o god_n to_o preach_v at_o rome_n act._n 23._o 11._o 10._o in_o his_o voyage_n to_o rome_n he_o be_v marvellous_o save_v from_o shipwreck_n and_o very_o memorable_a accident_n fall_v out_o beside_o in_o that_o journey_n act._n 27._o and_o 28._o 11._o s._n paul_n preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o suffer_v persecution_n in_o rome_n and_o stand_v for_o the_o truth_n when_o no_o man_n there_o assist_v he_o act._n 28._o 30._o 31._o 2_o tim._n 4._o 16._o 12._o s._n paul_n preach_v at_o antioch_n where_o the_o name_n christian_n be_v first_o give_v act._n 11._o 26._o 13._o s._n paul_n withstood_a s._n peter_n to_o his_o face_n and_o blame_v he_o when_o he_o do_v amyss_n gal_n 2._o 11._o etc._n etc._n 14._o s._n paul_n first_o cast_v out_o the_o devil_n of_o divination_n act._n 16._o 16._o 15._o he_o strike_v elymas_n the_o forcerer_n with_o blindness_n act._n 13._o 8._o 11._o 16._o s._n paul_n in_o vision_n be_v take_v up_o into_o the_o three_o heaven_n into_o paradise_n 2._o cor._n 12._o 2._o 4._o 17._o s._n paul_n in_o nothing_o be_v inferior_a to_o the_o very_a chief_n apostle_n 2_o cor._n 12._o 11._o 18._o he_o be_v of_o that_o tribe_n who_o precious_a stone_n be_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n rom._n 11._o 1._o rev._n 21._o 19_o exod._n 2d_o 10._o 20._o 21._o therefore_o for_o all_o those_o reason_n s._n paul_n be_v head_n of_o the_o catholic_n roman_n church_n here_o i_o appeal_v unto_o any_o unpartial_a reader_n whither_o my_o proof_n for_o s._n paul_n be_v not_o strong_a than_o you_o for_o s._n peter_n and_o whither_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o oversee_v to_o choose_v s._n peter_n for_o his_o patron_n who_o he_o can_v prove_v by_o any_o one_o title_n of_o god_n word_n that_o ever_o he_o set_v foot_n in_o rome_n gate_n &_o to_o leave_v s._n paul_n who_o be_v call_v of_o god_n to_o preach_v there_o and_o do_v so_o a_o long_a time_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v confirm_v yet_o for_o all_o this_o you_o will_v not_o grant_v that_o s._n paul_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o say_v i_o neither_o s._n peter_n and_o as_o for_o your_o pope_n he_o have_v no_o more_o ●ight_a to_o show_v for_o the_o same_o than_o mahomet_n we_o have_v see_v your_o proof_n from_o scripture_n you_o add_v unto_o they_o doctor_n and_o here_o as_o before_o you_o 194._o bring_v in_o your_o forgery_n of_o clemens_n and_o dio●ysius_n &c_n &c_n with_o other_o wrest_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n who_o all_o of_o they_o if_o they_o say_v as_o much_o as_o you_o will_v have_v they_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o make_v a_o head_n for_o the_o church_n second_o whatsoever_o they_o say_v for_o peter_n it_o prove_v nothing_o for_o your_o pope_n he_o must_v therefore_o show_v better_a evidence_n for_o his_o usurp_a prelacy_n or_o else_o he_o must_v still_o be_v repute_v the_o adversary_n that_o exalt_v himself_o 2_o thes._n 2._o 4._o you_o proceed_v 144_o and_o say_v that_o s._n peter_n authority_n must_v be_v derive_v to_o his_o successor_n lawful_o elect_v and_o govern_v at_o rome_n this_o be_v the_o main_a point_n which_o i_o will_v fain_o see_v prove_v you_o can_v prove_v it_o by_o express_a authority_n of_o all_o the_o father_n cite_v but_o let_v reason_n you_o say_v suffice_v i_o behold_v here_o and_o let_v all_o that_o have_v eye_n behold_v the_o desperatenes_n of_o your_o cause_n who_o for_o the_o main_a ground_n of_o your_o religion_n &_o church_n whereof_o you_o so_o boast_v can_v allege_v any_o one_o word_n or_o title_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o leave_v those_o true_a and_o ancient_a infallible_a record_n and_o betake_v you_o to_o the_o latter_a forge_a erroneous_a humane_a testimony_n &_o tradition_n of_o man_n i_o deny_v that_o peter_n leave_v any_o such_o successor_n in_o his_o office_n as_o you_o dream_v of_o and_o for_o the_o pope_n to_o challenge_v it_o be_v to_o follow_v the_o violencie_n of_o his_o private_a spirit_n as_o you_o 82_o say_v of_o pope_n stephen_n now_o let_v we_o hear_v your_o reason_n christ_n give_v the_o power_n of_o preach_v &c._n &c._n you_o say_v for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o to_o the_o world_n end_n this_o i_o grant_v so_o christ_n nstitute_v s._n peter_n the_o head_n you_o say_v will_v have_v that_o pre-eminence_n derive_v to_o his_o lawful_a successor_n all_o this_o i_o deny_v 1._o he_o make_v not_o peter_n head_n much_o less_o his_o successor_n ●_o he_o appoint_v no_o such_o successor_n after_o peter_n in_o his_o office_n 3._o if_o peter_n be_v to_o have_v successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v for_o it_o by_o warrant_n from_o christ_n than_o all_o other_o bishop_n in_o the_o world_n who_o for_o preach_v minister_a sacrament_n and_o govern_v their_o flock_n have_v and_o ever_o have_v equal_a power_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n when_o he_o be_v at_o the_o best_a thus_o after_o your_o long_a and_o tedious_a dispute_n you_o conclude_v with_o a_o fair_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n not_o be_v able_a to_o produce_v one_o line_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o speak_v for_o your_o pope_n nor_o any_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o reason_n how_o sound_o now_o you_o have_v prove_v your_o six_o part_n viz._n that_o the_o pope_n definitive_a sentence_n at_o least_o with_o a_o general_a council_n ●t_z be_v a_o sufficient_a groundwork_n of_o faith_n let_v any_o indifferent_a reasonable_a man_n give_v sentence_n here_o i_o do_v not_o dare_v you_o as_o you_o 196._o say_v to_o bring_v in_o the_o arrow_n of_o the_o father_n &c_n &c_n in_o a_o other_o place_n it_o be_v that_o i_o give_v you_o leave_v to_o use_v their_o reason_n if_o you_o please_v but_o not_o to_o press_v i_o with_o their_o bare_a name_n as_o your_o manner_n be_v to_o do_v and_o in_o all_o your_o long_a discourse_n let_v the_o reader_n mind_n what_o any_o one_o scripture_n or_o reason_n you_o have_v have_v by_o the_o help_n of_o doctor_n father_n council_n or_o pope_n to_o prove_v your_o assertion_n that_o the_o pope_n definitive_a sentence_n be_v to_o be_v a_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n you_o 197._o object_n and_o that_o often_o that_o unless_o i_o will_v eat_v my_o word_n you_o must_v prefer_v the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n before_o i_o i_o answer_v to_o your_o often_o repetition_n this_o first_o i_o speak_v of_o more_o and_o other_o than_o you_o account_v holy_a father_n yea_o i_o include_v such_o as_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o will_v burn_v for_o heretic_n second_o i_o speak_v and_o again_o speak_v it_o unfeighned_o as_o be_v in_o my_o hart_n be_v privy_a to_o my_o own_o manifold_a ignorances_n and_o infirmity_n and_o esteem_v of_o other_o better_o then_o of_o myself_o three_o therefore_o i_o say_v believe_v not_o i_o but_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o i_o show_v unto_o you_o if_o i_o speak_v of_o myself_o tread_v it_o under_o your_o foot_n but_o if_o i_o speak_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o despise_v they_o you_o despise_v the_o lord_n sin_v against_o your_o sowl_v and_o if_o you_o depend_v on_o the_o sentence_n of_o father_n council_n pope_n not_o confirm_v by_o the_o scripture_n you_o make_v idol_n of_o they_o and_o heap_v up_o wrath_n upon_o your_o head_n mis._n leave_v therefore_o your_o disdain_v of_o i_o and_o leave_v your_o extol_n of_o other_o man_n for_o all_o flesh_n be_v grass_n and_o all_o the_o glory_n of_o man_n be_v as_o the_o flower_n of_o grass_n which_o wither_v away_o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n endure_v for_o ever_o and_o that_o be_v the_o word_n which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v to_o the_o church_n 1._o
partu_fw-la et_fw-la post_fw-la partum_fw-la beside_o the_o equallitie_n of_o three_o person_n and_o their_o procession_n to_o nestorius_n will_v not_o easy_o be_v prove_v or_o to_o a_o arian_n if_o you_o stand_v only_o to_o a_o write_a word_n for_o he_o will_v cite_v scripture_n for_o himself_o pater_fw-la major_n est_fw-la i_o and_o if_o you_o say_v that_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v ●unt_fw-la only_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o humanity_n and_o not_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o divinity_n he_o will_v bid_v you_o prove_v that_o by_o the_o write_a word_n and_o what_o place_n of_o scripture_n soever_o you_o shall_v bring_v he_o will_v answer_v it_o with_o a_o other_o to_o his_o own_o purpose_n the_o like_a will_n the_o annaba●tist_n do_v about_o the_o bapti_n of_o infant_n how_o will_v you_o without_o tradition_n prove_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n as_o from_o one_o only_a fountain_n how_o will_v they_o justify_v the_o not_o keep_v of_o the_o sunday_n on_o saturday_n with_o the_o jew_n the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n fast_v the_o eat_n of_o blood_n and_o strangle_a meat_n prohibit_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n how_o can_v they_o cat_n a_o black_a pudding_n without_o the_o help_n of_o tradition_n since_o they_o know_v it_o be_v forbid_v by_o the_o write_a word_n and_o no_o write_v word_n find_v plain_o to_o license_v it_o therefore_o s._n paul_n see_v how_o necessary_a the_o use_n of_o tradition_n be_v in_o god_n church_n so_o often_o 2._o commend_v it_o unto_o us._n therefore_o brethren_n stand_v and_o holdthe_v tradition_n tim._n which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o 〈◊〉_d 1._o th'●fficacy_n '_o and_o force_v of_o which_o be_v so_o necessary_a by_o experience_n and_o so_o conve_v 11._o n●●t_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o common_a sense_n that_o i_o wonder_v how_o man_n shall_v deny_v 3._o the_o necessary_a use_n thereof_o for_o i_o ask_v if_o the_o apostle_n be_v alive_a and_o shall_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n tell_v we_o the_o content_n of_o many_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n without_o all_o doubt_n with_o all_o readiness_n we_o shall_v believe_v they_o why_o then_o will_v they_o not_o believe_v they_o that_o live_v in_o the_o apostle_n day_n and_o such_o holy_a father_n as_o flourish_v short_o after_o dy●●isnis_fw-la areopagita_n affirm_v the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n in_o fine_a eccles_n hier._n c._n 7._o parte_fw-la 3._o tertull._n de_fw-fr corona_fw-la militis_fw-la s._n aug._n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la c._n 1._o d_o chrus._n homil_n 3._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la philipp_n in_o morali_fw-la d._n damascen_n sermone_fw-la de_fw-fr defunctis_fw-la initio_fw-la also_o the_o ●rcede_v be_v affirm_v to_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n sic_fw-la ruffinus_n in_o exposit_n symboli_fw-la in_o principio_fw-la d._n hier._n epistol_n 61._o c._n 9_o d._n ambros._n sermone_fw-la 38._o d._n augustinus_n de_fw-fr symbolo_fw-la ad_fw-la catech_n lib._n 3._o c._n 1._o yea_o that_o tradition_n w●re_v of_o this_o account_n we_o may_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n we_o may_v easy_o gather_v by_o the_o irreverend_a speech_n which_o doctor_n whitaker_n use_v against_o s._n chrysostom_n for_o whereas_o he_o in_o the_o 2_o of_o the_o thess._n 4_o grant_n that_o tradition_n be_v as_o w●ll_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o scripture_n he_o say_v his_o speech_n be_v irreverend_a and_o unworthy_a of_o a_o father_n and_o whereas_o euseb._n lib_n 1._o de_fw-fr demonstrat_fw-la euangel_n c._n 8._o say_v the_o apostle_n do_v publish_v and_o propagate_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n partly_o by_o scripture_n and_o partly_o by_o tradi●i●●s_n he_o brief_o reject_v one_o of_o the_o famous_a recorder_n of_o antiquity_n say_v his_o authority_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v raynolds_n also_o in_o his_o conclusion_n a●●ered_v to_o his_o conference_n 1._o conclus_fw-la pag._n 689._o cartwr_n ●_o 8._o in_o his_o defence_n pag._n 103._o affirm_v that_o the_o father_n do_v still_o allow_v of_o unwritten_a tradition_n wherefore_o i_o will_v brief_o conclude_v this_o point_n show_v that_o a_o man_n rule_v by_o his_o private_a spirit_n direction_n can_v have_v no_o faith_n for_o since_o they_o believe_v scripture_n only_o to_o be_v scripture_n in_o that_o 〈◊〉_d be_v deliver_v up_o by_o the_o church_n why_o shall_v not_o they_o they_o believe_v any_o thing_n that_o the_o church_n with_o a_o general_a consent_n propound_v as_o ●_o 〈◊〉_d of_o our_o belief_n for_o if_o i_o believe_v the_o relation_n of_o my_o friend_n because_o my_o friend_n tell_v i_o i_o must_v believe_v all_o that_o my_o friend_n relate_v with_o the_o like_a firm_a assertion_n and_o with_o the_o like_a reason_n or_o else_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v my_o friend_n but_o my_o own_o affection_n that_o be_v thereunto_o incline_v to_o believe_v the_o one_o and_o not_o believe_v the_o other_o no_o more_o do_v no_o protestant_n or_o any_o other_o sect_n believe_v with_o a_o supernatural_a act_n of_o faith_n for_o then_o will_v ●e_v believe_v all_o that_o the_o scripture_n propound_v to_o be_v believe_v aswell_o as_o believe_v the_o scripture_n by_o reason_n it_o be_v of_o she_o propound_v else_o they_o believe_v only_o their_o private_a spirit_n dictament_n and_o fancy_n that_o have_v derive_v unto_o the_o knowledge_n of_o many_o other_o mystery_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o second_o thing_n i_o be_o to_o prove_v brief_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n definitive_a ii_o sentence_n as_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o indeficienr_a rule_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o which_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o luc._n 22._o simon_n ecce_fw-la satan_n expetivit_fw-la vos_fw-la ut_fw-la cribraret_fw-la sicut_fw-la triticum_fw-la ego_fw-la auten_fw-mi rogavi_fw-la pro_fw-la te_fw-la ut_fw-la ●ides_fw-la tua_fw-la non_fw-la deficiat_fw-la et_fw-la tu_fw-la aliquando_fw-la conversus_fw-la confirma_fw-la fratres_fw-la tuo_fw-la where_o our_o saviour_n that_o be_v the_o founteyne_v of_o all_o grace_n and_o goodness_n say_v that_o he_o have_v pray_v for_o s_o peter_n and_o so_o consequent_o for_o his_o successor_n since_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o church_n against_o hell_n gate_n not_o only_o for_o a_o time_n but_o for_o ever_o promise_v that_o saint_n peter_n and_o their_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v command_v both_o he_o and_o they_o and_o therefore_o bid_v they_o confirm_v their_o brethren_n and_o that_o this_o prayer_n be_v pour_v forth_o for_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n appear_v ●vid●tly_o first_o i●_n that_o our_o saviour_n point_v forth_o one_o particular_a man_n say_v simon_n simon_n particularise_v the_o speech_n with_o a_o pronowne_n of_o the_o second_o person_n say_v for_o thou_o thy_o faith_n and_o thy_o brethren_n 2._o though_o our_o saviour_n do_v begin_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o plural_a number_n satan_n expetivit_fw-la ut_fw-la cribraret_fw-la vos_fw-la satan_n desire_v to_o sift_v you_o immediate_o change_v the_o manner_n of_o speech_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o and_o not_o for_o you_o 3._o our_o saviour_n pray_v for_o he_o to_o who_o he_o bid_v &_o thou_o be_v convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n but_o only_o s._n peter_n and_o not_o the_o church_n in_o general_n have_v brethren_n beside_o s._n math_n 16._o he_o say_v he_o build_v his_o church_n upon_o s._n peter_n tue_fw-la p●trus_n et_fw-la super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la and_o thereupon_o he_o change_v his_o name_n of_o simon_n he_o make_v he_o peter_n and_o petra_n and_o cephas_n which_o name_n in_o the_o spria●k_a tongue_n signifyes_n a_o rock_n thereby_o to_o prevent_v all_o frivolous_a answer_n to_o a_o point_n so_o clear_o declare_v as_o appear_v first_o in_o that_o first_o he_o design_v he_o first_o out_o by_o the_o name_n of_o his_o father_n bar_n ionas_n 2._o by_o his_o own_o name_n simon_n then_o do_v he_o as_o it_o be_v seclude_v he_o from_o the_o rest_n say_v super_fw-la han●_n petram_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la then_o by_o the_o authority_n and_o pre-eminence_n give_v he_o show_v by_o the_o delivery_n of_o the_o keep_v all_o which_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v affirm_v with_o a_o uniform_a consent_n as_o tertull_n lib._n d●_n prescript_n orig._n homil_n 5._o in_o exod._n sanctus_n cypr_fw-la de_fw-la unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la s._n hill_n canon_n 16._o in_o mat._n s._n ambros._n sermo_fw-la 47._o 68_o lib._n 6._o in_o cap_n 9_o luc._n d._n hier._n lib_n 1._o in_o lovini_n s._n epiph._n in_o anchor_n s._n chrysost._n homil_n 55._o in_o mat._n etc_n every_o one_o of_o they_o affirm_v express_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v build_v on_o s._n peter_n as_o upon_o a_o rock_n beside_o this_o our_o saviour_n in_o s._n john_n 21._o gives_z s_o
the_o israelite_n discern_v canonical_a scripture_n from_o other_o so_o do_v we_o for_o we_o gentile_n be_v 6_o coheyr_n with_o they_o and_o of_o the_o same_o body_n for_o there_o be_v 5_o one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n as_o there_o be_v one_o lord_n and_o one_o faith_n but_o they_o rely_v not_o on_o the_o church_n or_o on_o the_o highpreist_n &_o his_o council_n for_o have_v they_o so_o do_v their_o church_n must_v have_v have_v privilege_n not_o to_o err_v as_o you_o think_v of_o you_o which_o if_o you_o grant_v a_o jew_n he_o will_v overthrow_v your_o belief_n in_o christ_n see_v their_o priest_n elder_n &_o people_n condemn_v christ_n his_o apostle_n and_o their_o write_n as_o you_o will_v answer_v a_o pharisee_n for_o this_o point_n so_o mind_v the_o like_a answer_n to_o yourself_o final_o your_o plea_n be_v overthrow_v &_o confound_v by_o your_o own_o practice_n for_o you_o will_v have_v we_o receive_v the_o scripture_n for_o canonical_a because_o your_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v so_o they_o be_v we_o must_v believe_v upon_o her_o word_n toby_n and_o judith_n to_o be_v canonical_a but_o the_o three_o and_o four_o of_o esdras_n not_o the_o first_o and_o second_o of_o the_o maccabee_n to_o be_v canonical_a but_o not_o the_o three_o or_o four_o if_o any_o make_v question_n of_o this_o for_o conscience_n sake_n you_o seek_v to_o resolve_v he_o by_o the_o definitive_a sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o can_v err_v but_o if_o he_o ask_v why_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n may_v not_o err_v aswell_o as_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n you_o then_o allege_v as_o after_o to_o i_o in_o this_o your_o letter_n christ_n promise_n to_o peter_n mat._n 16_o and_o there_o you_o scan_v every_o word_n and_o press_v every_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n to_o make_v he_o believe_v that_o peter_n be_v the_o rock_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o the_o pope_n his_o successor_n ask_v he_o you_o again_o how_o he_o shall_v know_v that_o matthewes_n gospel_n wherein_o this_o promise_n be_v write_v be_v canonical_a rather_o than_o nicodemus_n gospel_n you_o will_v answer_v because_o the_o pope_n have_v so_o determine_v thus_o the_o very_a entrance_n and_o ground_n of_o your_o religion_n bring_v man_n into_o a_o maze_n and_o labyrinth_n for_o we_o must_v believe_v the_o pope_n can_v err_v because_o christ_n say_v such_o word_n to_o peter_n which_o the_o pope_n expound_v and_o apply_v to_o himself_o &_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o christ_n say_v they_o word_n because_o the_o pope_n have_v determine_v that_o he_o say_v they_o thus_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n must_v rely_v whole_o upon_o man_n a_o clod_n of_o clay_n whatsoever_o he_o tell_v we_o be_v scripture_n that_o must_v we_o so_o esteem_v how_o ever_o he_o expound_v scripture_n so_o must_v we_o take_v it_o what_o he_o say_v be_v tradition_n or_o god_n unwritten_a word_n we_o must_v so_o regard_v and_o keep_v it_o be_v it_o never_o so_o absurd_a against_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n against_o reason_n against_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n against_o the_o evident_a testimony_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n we_o must_v captivate_v all_o our_o understanding_n faith_n and_o conscience_n under_o the_o pope_n wisdom_n and_o all_o because_o he_o tell_v we_o we_o must_v so_o do_v otherweise_v if_o we_o may_v try_v this_o principle_n of_o you_o by_o the_o scripture_n through_o the_o light_n of_o god_n spirit_n in_o we_o then_o may_v we_o do_v the_o like_a of_o other_o which_o be_v of_o lesser_a moment_n consider_v i_o pray_v you_o this_o first_o point_n serious_o and_o the_o lord_n give_v you_o understanding_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o let_v i_o here_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n though_o i_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o last_o motive_n in_o your_o letter_n where_o you_o tell_v i_o how_o when_o you_o shall_v be_v demand_v at_o the_o tribunal_n of_o almighty_a god_n why_o you_o believe_v in_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n you_o can_v answer_v by_o reason_n christ_n himself_o teach_v you_o so_o say_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o etc._n etc._n but_o deceive_v not_o your_o own_o soul_n for_o when_o christ_n shall_v ask_v you_o at_o that_o day_n why_o you_o have_v worship_v image_n sing_v mass_n and_o dirige_fw-la pray_v to_o saint_n and_o soul_n depart_v and_o 3._o transgress_v many_o other_o of_o his_o father_n commandment_n by_o your_o tradition_n you_o will_v answer_v because_o the_o head_n of_o your_o church_n the_o pope_n do_v teach_v you_o so_o when_o he_o shall_v ask_v you_o how_o you_o know_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o have_v such_o authority_n over_o your_o conscience_n you_o will_v answer_v because_o christ_n himself_o speak_v such_o word_n to_o peter_n as_o be_v write_v mat._n 16._o when_o he_o ask_v you_o again_o how_o you_o know_v that_o he_o speak_v those_o word_n or_o that_o they_o extend_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n above_o all_o other_o your_o answer_n will_v be_v according_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o your_o religion_n because_o the_o pope_n himself_o with_o his_o senate_n of_o cardinal_n do_v tell_v you_o so_o then_o will_v your_o hope_n be_v the_o web_n of_o a_o spider_n and_o your_o house_n now_o seem_v upon_o the_o rock_n will_v be_v find_v upon_o the_o sand_n you_o shall_v hear_v the_o curse_n pronounce_v upon_o ●_o the_o man_n that_o trust_v in_o man_n and_o make_v flesh_n his_o arm_n and_o withdre●v_v his_o hart_n from_o the_o lord_n and_o that_o all_o such_o 13._o worship_v he_o in_o vain_a as_o have_v their_o fear_n towards_o he_o teach_v by_o the_o precept_n of_o man_n the_o 26._o rock_n of_o my_o hart_n who_o be_v my_o portion_n for_o ever_o preserve_v i_o and_o deliver_v you_o from_o those_o syrte_n and_o quicksand_n where_o man_n make_v shipwreck_a of_o faith_n your_o second_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o bare_a &_o naked_a word_n of_o god_n answer_v can_v be_v a_o infallible_a rule_n or_o square_v of_o truth_n be_v this_o that_o which_o be_v difficult_a and_o include_v many_o fence_n at_o least_o to_o the_o ignorant_a can_v be_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o scripture_n be_v thus_o your_o antecedent_n you_o seek_v to_o confirm_v by_o luther_n te●tullian_n and_o s._n peter_n also_o who_o as_o you_o write_v say_v 3._o that_o in_o s._n paul_n epistle_n there_o be_v many_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v which_o the_o unlearned_a and_o unstable_a deprave_v as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o perdition_n to_o this_o of_o the_o apostle_n i_o answer_v first_o you_o set_v the_o holy_a text_n on_o the_o centre_n to_o stretch_v it_o out_o for_o your_o us●_n the_o apostle_n say_v 〈◊〉_d some_o thing_n be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v you_o will_v have_v he_o say_v many_o thing_n he_o say_v they_o deprave_v these_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n you_o say_v as_o all_o the_o rest_n second_o this_o testimony_n though_o it_o be_v as_o large_a as_o you_o extend_v it_o prove_v not_o your_o antecedent_n but_o only_o the_o first_o part_n of_o it_o and_o scarce_o that_o too_o for_o to_o gather_v because_o part_v be_v difficult_a therefore_o the_o whole_a be_v be_v more_o than_o either_o his_o word_n or_o good_a reason_n will_v bear_v the_o late_a part_n that_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n follow_v not_o upon_o the_o former_a it_o may_v be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d though_o some_o part_n of_o it_o be_v difficult_a though_o many_o man_n do_v deprave_v it_o our_o ignorance_n or_o perverseness_n can_v make_v crooked_a that_o which_o be_v most_o straight_o no_o more_o than_o our_o 3._o unfaithfulnes_n can_v make_v the_o faith_n of_o god_n of_o none_o effect_n the_o artizen_n that_o work_v by_o rule_n and_o squire_n ma●_n through_o want_n of_o skill_n or_o heed_n work_n amiss_o but_o himself_o be_v to_o blame_v and_o not_o his_o rule_n again_o though_o some_o scripture_n be_v difficult_a yet_o many_o be_v plain_a and_o easy_a and_o god_n have_v so_o temper_v they_o together_o that_o the_o wise_a shall_v have_v wherein_o to_o exercise_v their_o wit_n and_o admire_v god_n mysterios_fw-la and_o the_o simple_a shall_v have_v plain_a document_n whereby_o to_o ground_v their_o faith_n it_o be_v our_o father_n will_v also_o that_o to_o some_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v in_o parable_n that_o 10._o hear_v man_n may_v hear_v and_o not_o understand_v when_o to_o other_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v the_o secret_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n who_o have_v write_v his_o word_n 4._o to_o give_v unto_o the_o simple_a sharpness_n of_o wit_n to_o the_o child_n knowledge_n and_o discretion_n again_o you_o allege_v the_o eunuch_n act._n 8._o who_o confess_v that_o he_o can_v
degree_n and_o i_o show_v before_o that_o peter_n have_v no_o privilege_n in_o these_o thing_n above_o the_o other_o apostle_n is●ariot_n only_o except_v you_o next_o allege_v from_o mat._n 16._o how_o christ_n say_v he_o build_v his_o church_n upon_o s._n peter_n add_v moreover_o that_o he_o change_v his_o name_n and_o of_o simon_n he_o make_v he_o peter_n and_o petra_n and_o ●●phas_n which_o name_n in_o the_o syriah_n tongue_n signify_v a_o rock_n thereby_o to_o prevent_v all_o frivolous_a answer_n etc._n etc._n i_o wish_v you_o more_o wary_a in_o allege_v of_o scripture_n christ_n say_v he_o will_v build_v his_o church_n upon_o that_o rock_n petra_fw-la and_o have_v change_v before_o simons_n name_v not_o into_o that_o but_o into_o petros_n and_o whereas_o cephas_n the_o syriak_a name_n be_v ambiguous_a to_o signify_v in_o greek_a both_o petron_n and_o petran_n the_o ambiguity_n be_v clear_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o joh_n 1._o 43._o where_o cephas_n the_o man_n name_n be_v interpret_v petros_n that_o be_v in_o english_a a_o stone_n moreover_o that_o simons_n name_n be_v not_o petra_n rock_n be_v plain_n by_o mat._n 16._o where_o the_o apostle_n distinguish_v the_o term_n add_v also_o a_o pronoune_n demonstrative_a of_o the_o ●aute_fw-fr feminine_a sex_n which_o agree_v not_o with_o a_o man_n proper_a name_n &_o the_o syriak_n also_o by_o the_o demonstrative_a hada_n distinguish_v the_o proper_a name_n cipha_n from_o the_o appellative_a cipha_n which_o otherwise_o by_o termination_n have_v no_o difference_n as_o it_o stand_v not_o with_o the_o grammatical_a construction_n that_o simon_n shall_v have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o rock_n so_o neither_o stand_v it_o with_o the_o theological_a explication_n for_o the_o rock_n signify_v christ_n himself_o who_o be_v figure_v out_o to_o his_o church_n by_o a_o rock_n 1._o cor._n 10._o 4._o which_o be_v a_o title_n that_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n after_o he_o give_v unto_o god_n as_o 15._o perfect_a be_v the_o work_n of_o the_o rock_n and_o the_o rock_n of_o his_o salvation_n and_o many_o the_o like_a and_o that_o he_o only_o be_v the_o true_a and_o proper_a rock_n of_o the_o church_n we_o be_v teach_v by_o this_o and_o the_o like_a speech_n 32._o who_o be_v a_o rock_n save_o our_o god_n mean_v none_o else_o so_o christ_n be_v call_v 23._o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o any_o apostle_n and_o he_o be_v the_o only_a foundation_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v as_o it_o be_v write_v 11._o other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v then_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v which_o be_v jesus_n christ._n and_o peter_n himself_o tell_v we_o that_o 2._o christ_n be_v the_o rock_n and_o live_a stone_n unto_o which_o all_o christian_n as_o live_a stone_n do_v come_v and_o be_v build_v to_o a_o spiritual_a house_n and_o simon_n be_v a_o principal_a stone_n in_o this_o house_n have_v therefore_o the_o name_n peter_n stone_n of_o petra_n as_o we_o all_o of_o christ_n have_v the_o name_n christian_n and_o as_o touch_v faith_n be_v live_a stone_n that_o be_v peter_n have_v obtain_v 1._o isotimon_n pistin_a a_o like_a precious_a faith_n with_o simon_n peter_n himself_o and_o the_o other_o apostle_n though_o as_o touch_v order_n they_o be_v principal_a next_o unto_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v write_v 28._o first_o apostle_n second_o prophet_n &c_n &c_n and_o then_o other_o officer_n and_o brethren_n in_o their_o due_a place_n moreover_o be_v it_o grant_v that_o christ_n mean_v to_o build_v his_o church_n upon_o s._n peter_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o upon_o he_o only_o for_o it_o be_v write_v 20._o you_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o th'apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o again_o 14._o the_o wall_n of_o the_o city_n have_v twelve_o foundation_n and_o in_o they_o the_o n●mes_v of_o the_o lamb_n twelve_o apostle_n wherefore_o christ_n build_v the_o church_n upon_o the_o 12._o not_o upon_o one_o alone_a &_o it_o rest_v upon_o you_o to_o prove_v that_o by_o say_v super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la christ_n seclude_v peter_n from_o the_o rest_n for_o the_o rest_n have_v the_o rock_n and_o belong_v thereto_o aswell_o as_o simon_n though_o he_o be_v foremost_a in_o the_o r●w_n and_o though_o he_o only_o have_v the_o name_n of_o peter_n a_o stone_n that_o exempt_v not_o other_o from_o this_o grace_n for_o the_o two_o that_o be_v next_o unto_o he_o james_n and_o john_n only_o have_v the_o name_n of_o 17._o boanerges_n that_o be_v son_n of_o thunder_n yet_o do_v not_o they_o only_o thunder_v out_o the_o gospel_n or_o understand_v as_o 14_o job_n speak_v the_o thunder_n of_o god_n power_n but_o the_o other_o apostle_n also_o have_v the_o same_o office_n by_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n though_o perhaps_o not_o in_o like_a manner_n or_o measure_n of_o grace_n the_o like_a answer_n i_o make_v for_o the_o delivery_n of_o key_n to_o peter_n a_o thing_n which_o you_o bare_o mention_n they_o be_v not_o give_v to_o he_o alone_o for_o as_o christ_n ask_v his_o disciple_n joint_o and_o not_o peter_n only_o 15_o who_o say_v you_o that_o i_o be_o so_o simon_n answer_v not_o for_o himself_o alone_o but_o for_o they_o all_o whereupon_o christ_n pronounce_v a_o blessing_n and_o annex_v promise_n not_o for_o he_o alone_o but_o as_o you_o grant_v for_o his_o successor_n also_o as_o i_o defend_v for_o the_o other_o apostle_n also_o this_o may_v be_v confirm_v by_o other_o like_a testimony_n as_o john_n 6_o 67._o where_o christ_n say_v to_o the_o 12._o will_v you_o also_o go_v away_o then_o simon_n peter_n answer_v master_n to_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v whereby_o it_o be_v plain_n that_o christ_n ask_v all_o when_o one_o answer_v he_o answer_v for_o all_o therefore_o also_o the_o blessing_n upon_o the_o answer_n must_v concern_v all_o and_o so_o the_o promise_v not_o peculiar_a to_o peter_n but_o common_a with_o the_o rest_n likeweise_v so_o also_o in_o this_o particular_a of_o the_o key_n for_o further_a proof_n whereof_o set_v you_o down_o by_o the_o scripture_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o key_n and_o i_o will_v show_v you_o by_o scripture_n also_o that_o the_o 12._o apostle_n have_v equal_a power_n in_o use_v they_o your_o supply_n of_o proof_n from_o testimony_n of_o late_a doctor_n i_o leave_v as_o insufficient_a their_o write_n neither_o be_v authentik_a nor_o any_o thing_n so_o ancient_a as_o the_o apostle_n write_n and_o the_o most_o ancient_a record_n i_o stand_v to_o be_v try_v by_o yet_o if_o i_o ly_v to_o fight_v with_o such_o weapon_n i_o can_v cite_v doctor_n against_o doctor_n and_o many_o against_o you_o &_o augustine_n 13._o most_o plain_o contrary_v your_o opinion_n and_o say_v that_o the_o rock_n be_v that_o which_o peter_n confess_v &_o know_v when_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n and_o that_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n not_o peter_n but_o i_o will_v not_o press_v you_o with_o man_n authority_n the_o book_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v my_o panoplie_n and_o sufficient_a artillery_n your_o last_o proof_n be_v from_o john_n 21._o where_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n feed_v my_o sheep_n which_o sound_v as_o much_o you_o say_v as_o have_v care_n of_o my_o fold_n but_o in_o s._n john_n 10._o it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v but_o one_o flock_n and_o one_o shepherd_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o he_o honour_v peter_n thrice_o with_o the_o stile_n of_o a_o universal_a pastor_n this_o reason_n have_v like_o frailty_n as_o the_o former_a i_o deny_v that_o peter_n alone_o be_v to_o feed_v christ_n sheep_n for_o he_o send_v all_o his_o apostle_n with_o that_o charge_n mat._n 28._o 19_o 20._o and_o before_o this_o speech_n to_o he_o he_o have_v say_v to_o they_o all_o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o joh._n 20_o 21._o peter_n therefore_o as_o he_o be_v 1_o sympresbytero_n joint_a elder_n with_o the_o rest_n not_o archipresbytero_n chief_n elder_a so_o be_v he_o also_o sympoiman_n a_o joint_a pastor_n with_o the_o rest_n and_o not_o archipoiman_n chief_a pastor_n as_o you_o will_v have_v he_o for_o himself_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v he_o 1._o pet_n 5._o 4._o the_o same_o christ_n also_o confirm_v in_o the_o place_n you_o allege_v john_n 10._o for_o there_o he_o say_v 14_o i_o be_o the_o good_a pastor_n and_o 15._o i_o lay_v down_o my_o life_n for_o the_o sheep_n and_o 18._o i_o have_v power_n to_o lay_v down_o my_o life_n and_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o again_o this_o commandment_n have_v i_o receive_v of_o my_o father_n and_o 28._o i_o give_v unto_o my_o sheep_n eternal_a life_n and_o they_o shall_v never_o perish_v with_o many_o like_a speech_n which_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n be_v apply_v to_o any_o mere_a man_n but_o to_o he_o which_o be_v 30._o one_o with_o the_o father_n and_o
not_o fle_v your_o arm_n se●k_v wisdom_n as_o silver_n &_o search_v for_o she_o as_o for_o treasure_n so_o god_n may_v be_v entreat_v to_o show_v you_o the_o way_n of_o life_n that_o you_o may_v escape_v from_o h●l_n beneath_o which_o grace_n i_o wish_v and_o shall_v do_v my_o andevour_n to_o procure_v unto_o you_o so_o rest_v i_o your_o friend_n for_o all_o christian_a help_n to_o my_o power_n henry_n ainsworth_n your_o letter_n i_o receive_v the_o beginning_n of_o this_o month_n december_n 1609._o and_o i_o write_v this_o the_o 23._o of_o the_o same_o stilo_fw-it veteri_fw-la from_o amsterdam_n john_n aynsworths_n reply_n to_o mr_n henry_n ainsworth_n in_o amsterdam_n site_n audierit_n lucratus_fw-la eris_fw-la fratrem_fw-la tuum_fw-la s._n math._n 18._o i_o perceive_v now_o by_o your_o second_o writing_n mr_n ainsworth_n your_o readiness_n to_o write_v but_o your_o unreadynes_n to_o answer_v all_o the_o ground_n of_o my_o discourse_n for_o where_o as_o still_o i_o press_v you_o with_o the_o authority_n &_o uniform_a consent_n of_o those_o that_o live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o be_v their_o scholar_n when_o i_o urge_v you_o with_o the_o authority_n and_o most_o ancient_a record_n of_o history_n when_o we_o bring_v against_o you_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o counsel_n and_o holy_a father_n the_o whole_a school_n of_o doctor_n when_o we_o urge_v you_o with_o the_o assertion_n of_o luther_n c●lvin_n beza_n i_o well_o whitaker_n hooker_n pillar_n nay_o first_fw-mi founder_n of_o the_o protestant_n religion_n out_o of_o who_o near_a wither_a stock_n the_o br●w●●sts_n be_v new_o bud_v and_o even_o in_o the_o bud_n remain_v as_o blast_v by_o the_o breath_n of_o their_o own_o parent_n you_o think_v this_o answer_n sufficient_a that_o they_o be_v all_o man_n all_o dust_n and_o ash_n and_o so_o err_v say_v l●t_o the_o father_n sleep_n as_o though_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v be_v in_o a_o dead_a st●ep_n of_o error_n until_o this_o present_a age_n as_o though_o the_o apostle_n own_o disciple_n that_o suck_v knowledge_n from_o their_o mouth_n have_v need_n to_o be_v disciple_v of_o you_o for_o their_o dangerous_a error_n as_o though_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o hyst_n dionysius_n areopagita_n 8._o egesippus_fw-la 20._o polycarpus_n 4._o irenaeus_n gregor_n nazianz._n chrys._n tertul._n s._n cypr_fw-la s._n ambrose_n s._n hi●r_n s._n augustin_n be_v all_o deceive_v all_o hoodwincut_a so_o long_o in_o error_n yea_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v promise_v to_o be_v the_o pillar_n of_o t●…_n that_o be_v seat_v on_o a_o roch_fw-fr shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o hell_n gat●s_v for_o a_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o year_n contrarn_v to_o the_o firm_a promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n yea_o that_o luther_n calvin_n b●za_n jewel_n whitaker_n humphrey_n etc._n etc._n these_o time_n grand_a jury_n man_n and_o doctor_n be_v all_o d._n c●●ved_v in_o give_v up_o their_o verdict_n and_o so_o decrive_v that_o they_o be_v of_o you_o implicit_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n sure_o such_o a_o verdict_n can_v never_o win_v credit_n before_o any_o bar_n or_o tribunal_n in_o the_o world_n where_o so_o many_o eye_n and_o ear_n witness_n can_v be_v hear_v evidence_n and_o record_n of_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n of_o age_n be_v not_o admit_v as_o currant_n where_o infinite_a doctor_n and_o professor_n be_v refuse_v in_o their_o own_o science_n to_o be_v believe_v when_o our_o adversary_n own_o father_n friend_n and_o adherent_n be_v hold_v as_o partial_a and_o all_o testimony_n of_o what_o condition_n soever_o brave_v with_o this_o that_o they_o be_v all_o but_o man_n that_o th●y_v have_v all_o err_v what_o do_v you_o mr_n ainsworth_n but_o teach_v i_o a_o way_n to_o answer_v whatsoever_o you_o can_v bring_v for_o i_o can_v say_v you_o be_v only_a dust_n and_o ash_n only_o a_o man_n and_o lichly_o sure_o to_o err_v than_o all_o they_o that_o have_v live_v before_o you_o and_o then_o all_o man_n that_o live_v in_o this_o age_n with_o you_o pard●n_v i_o in_o deal_v so_o roundly_o with_o you_o for_o it_o proceed_v through_o no_o aversion_n towards_o your_o person_n but_o only_o to_o demonstrate_v the_o truth_n of_o my_o cause_n and_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o your_o answer_n now_o to_o descend_v down_o more_o particular_o unto_o your_o answer_n you_o ●arp_a first_o at_o my_o proceed_n which_o i_o think_v by_o a_o distinction_n direct_a enough_o at_o which_o you_o except_v as_o though_o direct_a and_o distinct_a be_v not_o in_o the_o sense_n i_o take_v they_o all_o one_o and_o so_o then_o to_o answer_v by_o a_o distinction_n be_v to_o give_v a_o direct_a or_o a_o distinct_a answer_n but_o you_o be_v like_o one_o that_o be_v even_o weary_v ere_o ever_o he_o set_v forth_o foot_n in_o journey_n &_o therefore_o to_o make_v your_o journey_n the_o short_a you_o will_v conceive_v it_o only_o in_o a_o continue_a and_o dead_a way_n delude_v thereby_o yourself_o with_o imagination_n that_o your_o journey_n be_v short_a and_o therefore_o i_o think_v you_o in_o a_o confuse_v deal_v seem_v more_o fearful_a of_o the_o way_n to_o run_v then_o i_o that_o consider_v the_o question_n we_o be_v to_o handle_v by_o distinct_a point_n divide_v my_o answer_n by_o the_o eye_n of_o judgement_n into_o distinct_a portion_n and_o therefore_o i_o answer_v you_o again_o when_o you_o demand_v of_o i_o what_o shall_v decide_v all_o controversy_n in_o religion_n whether_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o of_o man_n i_o answer_v you_o direct_o enough_o that_o by_o god_n write_v and_o unwritten_a word_n as_o by_o a_o formal_a motive_n we_o be_v to_o be_v try_v and_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o by_o a_o propound_v manner_n &_o by_o way_n of_o circumstance_n necessary_o require_v to_o show_v what_o be_v authentic_a and_o what_o be_v not_o canonica_fw-la and_o so_o i_o hope_v this_o answer_n be_v direct_a and_o plain_a enough_o ask_v a_o philosopher_n what_o burn_v and_o he_o will_v tell_v you_o the_o fire_n and_o his_o quality_n but_o demand_v how_o approximation_n of_o the_o subject_n concur_v without_o which_o the_o fire_n never_o natural_o burn_v and_o he_o will_v tell_v you_o it_o be_v condicio_fw-la sine_fw-la qua_fw-la non_fw-la most_o necessary_o require_v ask_v a_o philosopher_n who_o give_v power_n to_o some_o hide_a herb_n unknowen_a to_o have_v his_o operation_n he_o will_v answer_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o herb_n principal_o but_o what_o do_v determine_v it_o hic_fw-la et_fw-la nunc_fw-la to_o work_v he_o will_v answer_v the_o art_n &_o knowledge_n of_o the_o herbalist_n that_o find_v out_o the_o secret_a nature_n of_o the_o herb_n show_v how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v apply_v and_o use_v to_o have_v his_o due_a operation_n so_o here_o i_o answer_v that_o god_n write_v and_o unwritten_a word_n formal_o and_o principal_o cause_v we_o to_o believe_v but_o the_o church_n that_o propound_v it_o as_o god_n word_n concur_v as_o a_o apply_v circumstance_n the_o church_n be_v the_o treasury_n of_o all_o truth_n the_o trinit_a medi●●●e_a against_o all_o malady_n the_o ●howse_n of_o truth_n show_v we_o unfalliblie_o what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o what_o be_v not_o and_o therefore_o you_o wonder_v without_o cause_n that_o i_o shall_v answer_v by_o a_o distinction_n definition_n and_o distinction_n be_v the_o two_o eye_n or_o guide_v of_o reason_n but_o now_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o matter_n i_o intend_v brief_o to_o show_v how_o my_o reason_n that_o i_o give_v to_o prove_v my_o assertion_n viz_o that_o only_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a rule_n and_o a_o infallible_a guide_n of_o faith_n remain_v yet_o for_o all_o your_o pretend_a answer_n in_o firm_a force_n unshaken_a 2._o i_o intend_v to_o show_v how_o your_o reason_n deduce_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o reason_n in_o that_o they_o be_v wrest_v from_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v they_o or_o mean_v they_o 3._o as_o occasion_n shall_v offer_v i_o will_v touch_v your_o answer_n to_o the_o other_o question_n leave_v the_o exact_a and_o direct_v handle_v thereof_o until_o this_o controversy_n in_o hand_n be_v end_v first_o than_o you_o set_v down_o the_o first_o argument_n which_o i_o bring_v thus_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v not_o teach_v or_o manifest_o gather_v i._o out_o of_o the_o write_a word_n but_o that_o the_o bible_n be_v canonical_a be_v not_o teach_v or_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o write_a word_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o the_o bible_n be_v canonical_a mark_v then_o how_o mr_n ainsworth_n argument_n smooth_v up_o the_o matter_n that_o he_o have_v give_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n when_o he_o answer_v that_o the_o pillar_n of_o our_o proposition_n be_v earth_n &_o ash_n and_o therefore_o the_o whole_a frame_n of_o my_o argument_n lie_v in_o the_o dust_n
this_o peter_n be_v first_o i_o confess_v in_o many_o good_a thing_n for_o which_o he_o deserve_v praise_n but_o that_o he_o be_v first_o in_o this_o you_o prove_v not_o when_o they_o have_v the_o infasion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n erxanto_n they_o begin_v say_v the_o scripture_n to_o speak_v it_o may_v be_v peter_n be_v indeed_o the_o first_o for_o he_o be_v first_o in_o order_n among_o they_o and_o as_o be_v like_a in_o age_n but_o not_o in_o office_n above_o the_o other_o apostle_n 8._o the_o first_o miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v make_v by_o s._n peter_n and_o you_o shall_v work_v another_o miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o my_o sai_z if_o from_o this_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v you_o can_v by_o sound_a argument_n conclude_v he_o head_n as_o your_o pope_n expound_v the_o head_n ship_n howbeit_o the_o first_o miracle_n be_v the_o speak_n with_o strange_a tongue_n for_o that_o 11._o all_o man_n admire_v &_o who_o be_v first_o in_o that_o neither_o i_o nor_o you_o can_v tell_v 9_o he_o as_o supreme_a judge_n condemn_v the_o hypocrisy_n of_o ananias_n and_o saphira_n and_o paul_n as_o supreme_a judge_n condemn_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o hymenaeus_n &_o alexander_n 20._o deliver_v they_o to_o satan_n and_o the_o forcerie_n of_o elymas_n 11._o strike_v he_o with_o blindness_n if_o miracle_n prove_v supremacy_n the_o church_n shall_v have_v many_o supreme_a head_n 10._o he_o first_o discover_v simon_n magus_n and_o condemn_v he_o if_o the_o pope_n will_v do_v so_o too_o simony_n at_o this_o day_n will_v not_o be_v so_o rise_v when_o ben_v sergius_n tertius_fw-la &_o benedictus_n 4._o get_v the_o popedom_n with_o bribery_n and_o alexander_n the_o ●_o 1._o buy_v the_o voice_n of_o many_o cardinal_n whither_o be_v cephas_n or_o magus_n their_o predecessor_n if_o the_o virtue_n make_v peter_n head_n the_o contrary_a vice_n make_v your_o pope_n the_o tail_n how_o be_v it_o your_o prelate_n if_o 5._o writer_n say_v true_a have_v be_v more_o ready_a to_o receive_v with_o 15_o with_o judas_n then_o to_o give_v 18_o with_o simon_n all_o these_o and_o other_o circumstance_n concur_v in_o s._n peter_n show_v you_o say_v manifest_o that_o s._n peter_n have_v preeminence_n above_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church●●_n they_o be_v show_n in_o deed_n &_o circumstance_n stand_v a_o far_o off_o but_o never_o a_o one_o of_o they_o have_v strike_v a_o stroke_n in_o this_o your_o ●●l●tation_n peter_n have_v for_o the_o most_o part_n preeminence_n in_o order_n i_o ready_o grant_v but_o his_o office_n and_o authority_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o with_o the_o other_o apostle_n mat._n 28._o 16._o 20._o joh._n 20_o 21._o 22_o 23._o paul_n relate_v the_o office_n ordain_v of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n say_v 28._o first_o apostles_n second_o prophet_n 〈◊〉_d and_o again_o 11._o he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n but_o the_o scripture_n no_o where_o say_v first_o peter_n the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n than_o apostle_n and_o that_o peter_n be_v neither_o head_n nor_o rock_n i_o prove_v in_o my_o former_a writing_n if_o you_o will_v admit_v of_o proof_n from_o god_n book_n if_o not_o then_o keep_v your_o show_n and_o circumstance_n still_o but_o make_v no_o such_o conclusion_n with_o a_o manifestlye_a you_o proceed_v and_o say_v that_o peter_n be_v particular_o point_v out_o by_o his_o own_o name_n his_o father_n name_n and_o his_o new_a name_n cephas_n that_o no_o cavil_n may_v be_v take_v at_o a_o legacy_n so_o strong_o &_o particular_o firm_v unto_o s._n peter_n his_o legacy_n be_v no_o way_n by_o i_o impugn_a i_o know_v it_o be_v firm_a though_o not_o so_o great_a as_o you_o will_v make_v it_o but_o you_o impugn_v the_o legacy_n of_o the_o other_o apostle_n unto_o who_o in_o peter_n be_v promise_v and_o after_o to_o they_o all_o general_o perform_v whatsoever_o power_n peter_n have_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n mat._n 28._o joh._n 20._o act._n 2._o yea_o you_o impugn_v the_o dominion_n of_o christ_n himself_o while_o you_o will_v make_v peter_n the_o rock_n and_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n 2._o sam._n 22_o 32._o 1_o cor._n 10_o 4._o ephe._n 5_o 23._o and_o whither_o you_o have_v answer_v all_o that_o i_o bring_v to_o prove_v christ_n only_o the_o rock_n let_v the_o equal_a reader_n of_o my_o former_a write_a judge_n you_o make_v bold_a and_o bare_a affirmation_n without_o proof_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o humane_a learning_n petros_n you_o say_v signify_v either_o a_o rock_n or_o a_o stone_n but_o what_o learned_a auctor_fw-la do_v you_o show_v for_o it_o and_o he_o be_v call_v petros_n you_o say_v not_o petra_n because_o the_o masculine_a gender_n best_o fit_v the_o name_n of_o a_o man_n as_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o man_n unto_o who_o the_o title_n petra_n rock_n be_v by_o peter_n himself_o give_v 1._o pet._n 2_o 8._o but_o he_o be_v unto_o you_o the_o rock_n of_o scandal_n while_o you_o stumble_v at_o his_o power_n and_o headship_n and_o give_v it_o to_o his_o enemy_n the_o pope_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o peter_n and_o that_o your_o church_n have_v make_v shipwreck_n against_o this_o rock_n not_o only_o of_o faith_n but_o of_o learning_n also_o appear_v in_o this_o that_o you_o make_v cephas_n upon_o optatus_n credit_n in_o greek_n to_o signify_v a_o head_n as_o christ_n you_o say_v be_v call_v the_o head_n isa_n 8_o &_o 28._o dan._n 2._o psal._n 117._o mat._n 21._o rom._n 9_o 1._o cor_fw-la 10._o ephes._n 2._o what_o do_v all_o or_o any_o of_o these_o scripture_n show_v that_o cephas_n signify_v a_o head_n nothing_o less_o you_o that_o entwite_z we_o with_o my_o private_a spirit_n interpretation_n shall_v have_v be_v better_o avize_v then_o thus_o open_o and_o direct_o to_o oppugn_v the_o public_a interpretation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n joh._n 1._o 43._o where_o cephas_n be_v interpret_v petros_n a_o stone_n &_o not_o cephalee_n a_o head_n or_o if_o you_o think_v the_o apostle_n have_v also_o a_o private_a spirit_n and_o know_v not_o syriak_n and_o greek_a so_o well_o as_o optatus_n yet_o may_v you_o have_v prefer_v the_o public_a approve_a learning_n of_o your_o own_o linguist_n who_o 6._o interpret_n cephas_n a_o rock_n show_v that_o optatus_n head_n want_v wit_n in_o this_o that_o he_o say_v it_o signify_v a_o head_n and_o they_o want_v conscience_n that_o upon_o this_o false_a ground_n apply_v these_o scripture_n that_o speak_v of_o christ_n the_o head_n unto_o a_o mortal_a creature_n whereas_o the_o 32._o rock_n be_v the_o creator_n &_o agree_v god_n himself_o as_o the_o lxxij_o greek_a interpreter_n if_o you_o will_v learn_v of_o they_o will_v teach_v you_o but_o let_v i_o follow_v your_o argument_n you_o say_v my_o objection_n that_o s._n peter_n answer_v as_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o have_v not_o these_o promise_n make_v to_o himself_o alone_o make_v much_o against_o i_o for_o to_o be_v spokesman_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n the_o master-spring_n of_o all_o their_o judgement_n seem_v to_o grant_v he_o superiority_n if_o every_o spokesman_n be_v master-spring_n of_o all_o their_o judgement_n for_o who_o he_o speak_v it_o be_v something_o that_o you_o say_v but_o ask_v a_o jury_n of_o any_o 12_o man_n in_o england_n whither_o this_o be_v true_a in_o the_o foreman_n of_o the_o quest_n the_o spokesman_n in_o a_o council_n the_o speaker_n in_o a_o parhament_n be_v they_o the_o master-spring_n of_o all_o their_o judgement_n with_o who_o they_o sit_v when_o 5._o thomas_n when_o 8._o philip_n when_o 22._o jude_n speak_v unto_o christ_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n be_v they_o master-spring_n of_o all_o the_o other_o judgement_n i_o perceiv_v your_o rock_n the_o pope_n have_v but_o a_o weak_a foundation_n that_o be_v bear_v up_o by_o such_o sandy_a conclusion_n if_o s._n peter_n can_v not_o have_v the_o prerogative_n of_o place_n give_v unto_o he_o in_o that_o he_o represent_v the_o church_n no_o more_o you_o say_v can_v the_o son_n of_o abraham_n be_v two_o son_n in_o that_o they_o represent_v two_o nation_n you_o want_v help_v to_o make_v up_o your_o argument_n thus_o but_o abraham_n a_o son_n be_v 2._o son_n still_o though_o they_o represent_v 2._o nation_n therefore_o s._n peter_n be_v s._n peter_n still_o though_o he_o represent_v the_o church_n very_o true_a &_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v apostle_n still_o though_o they_o represent_v the_o church_n and_o so_o antichrist_n shall_v be_v antichrist_n still_o though_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o represent_v the_o church_n yea_o and_o 4._o god_n himself_o you_o grant_v i_o that_o all_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v a_o foundation_n apoc._n 21._o but_o not_o the_o principal_a neither_o
we_o and_o who_o judgement_n you_o say_v you_o prefer_v before_o yourself_o for_o first_o you_o entangle_v i_o yourself_o in_o a_o endless_a circle_n for_o you_o prove_v the_o private_a spirit_n to_o be_v true_a in_o that_o the_o write_a word_n say_v as_o interpret_v by_o you_o that_o it_o be_v true_a and_o you_o prove_v the_o write_a word_n to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o private_a spirit_n both_o which_o we_o deny_v since_o we_o will_v have_v neither_o the_o write_a word_n alone_o or_o private_a spirit_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o you_o do_v not_o only_o commit_v a_o circle_n but_o persuade_v against_o your_o own_o persuasion_n since_o you_o will_v have_v i_o to_o believe_v you_o only_o cite_v scripture_n before_o thousand_o bo●●on_n father_n cite_v scripture_n also_o who_o worth_n by_o so_o many_o title_n you_o prefer_v before_o yourself_o sure_o sure_o you_o have_v no_o gift_n in_o persuasion_n 152._o and_o not_o only_o thus_o unreasonablie_o do_v you_o proceed_v but_o as_o the_o manichy_n to_o s._n august_n you_o object_v many_o place_n of_o scripture_n who_o inference_n still_o ●re_n nol●_n catholicis_fw-la credere_fw-la do_v not_o believe_v the_o catholic_n i_o can_v then_o return_v you_o this_o answer_n with_o st._n aug._n praedic●tibus_fw-la non_fw-la rectè_fw-la facies_fw-la per_fw-la euamgelium_fw-la i_o cogere_fw-la ad_fw-la manichaei_n fidem_fw-la q._n ipsi_fw-la evangelio_n catholicis_fw-la praedicantibus_fw-la credidi_fw-la you_o do_v not_o well_o by_o scripture_n cite_v from_o the_o gospel_n to_o urge_v i_o to_o believe_v your_o brownisme_n against_o the_o catholic_n faith_n for_o this_o gospel_n out_o of_o which_o you_o cite_v these_o word_n and_o wrest_a place_n i_o receive_v fron●he_a catholic_n church_n from_o whence_o you_o will_v dissuade_v i_o 153._o the_o ●_o thing_n that_o i_o be_o to_o show_v be_v that_o the_o pope_n defini●tive_a pa●●_n sentence_n at_o least_o with_o a_o general_a counsel_n be_v sufficient_a to_o determine_v order_n all_o controversy_n and_o be_v a_o sufficient_a groundwork_n of_o faith_n this_o you_o say_v i_o propound_v faint_o in_o that_o i_o do_v allege_v i_o do_v not_o of_o purpose_n dispute_v it_o though_o as_o you_o object_v it_o be_v the_o main_a question_n 154._o i_o answer_v most_o true_a it_o be_v according_a to_o my_o answer_n wherein_o i_o do_v voluntary_o yield_v to_o this_o to_o which_o by_o force_n of_o argument_n i_o be_v never_o urge_v so_o it_o be_v the_o main_a drift_n of_o the_o question_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o you_o or_o your_o argument_n it_o be_v not_o the_o main_a question_n for_o when_o i_o say_v there_o be_v something_o else_o require_v beside_o the_o write_a word_n to_o make_v it_o a_o complete_a rule_n of_o faith_n i_o do_v not_o answer_v faint_o when_o i_o grant_v more_o than_o that_o to_o which_o i_o be_v urge_v for_o your_o argument_n require_v to_o know_v how_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n may_v be_v infallible_a may_v have_v a_o manifold_a sense_n for_o if_o you_o take_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o father_n &_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n so_o it_o be_v infallible_a if_o you_o take_v it_o for_o a_o general_a council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n so_o it_o be_v also_o of_o infallible_a authority_n if_o you_o take_v it_o for_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o council_n of_o cardinal_n define_v ex_fw-la cathedra_fw-la so_o it_o be_v of_o infallible_a authority_n and_o since_o in_o all_o these_o sense_n the_o catholic_n church_n be_v a_o indeficient_a rule_n to_o determine_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n i_o do_v not_o therefore_o faint_o answer_v when_o i_o insist_v on_o the_o last_o 155_o as_o for_o your_o rhethoricall_a flourish_n and_o forge_a resolution_n of_o my_o faith_n i_o have_v sufficient_o exclude_v our_o opinion_n from_o that_o circle_n in_o which_o you_o stick_v fast_o nervaeus_n when_o he_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v virtualy_a the_o whole_a church_n mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o he_o be_v the_o spiritual_a head_n to_o direct_v the_o whole_a church_n by_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 156._o as_o for_o my_o vellitation_n those_o few_o that_o i_o bring_v be_v sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v your_o groundless_a opinion_n as_o for_o my_o reason_n in_o the_o armadoe_n of_o i_o as_o you_o term_v they_o that_o you_o say_v will_v never_o enter_v the_o field_n it_o may_v be_v well_o they_o scorn_v to_o oppose_v one_o that_o lie_v at_o their_o fellow_n mercy_n already_o 157._o now_o you_o come_v to_o examine_v the_o prerogative_n of_o s._n peter_n out_o of_o the_o whole_a series_n of_o which_o &_o the_o circumstance_n thereof_o &_o not_o only_o outof_a each_o particular_a i_o draw_v a_o infallible_a argument_n but_o you_o in_o a_o swear_v they_o rather_o seek_v to_o shun_v or_o avoid_v a_o blow_n then_o to_o give_v any_o 158._o first_o you_o grant_v that_o ever_o almost_o s._n peter_n be_v name_v first_o of_o the_o apostle_n you_o except_o some_o 3._o or_o 4._o place_n but_o you_o cite_v none_o though_o otherwise_o most_o frequent_a in_o multiplicity_n of_o cite_a place_n to_o no_o purpose_n hence_o you_o grant_v that_o primacy_n of_o order_n and_o not_o of_o authority_n may_v be_v gather_v you_o say_v this_o gratis_o but_o since_o the_o holy_a ghost_n both_o not_o repeat_v this_o prunacie_n to_o no_o purpose_n sure_o there_o his_o authority_n above_o his_o other_o brethren_n be_v argue_v thence_o and_o since_o to_o be_v name_v still_o first_o through_o the_o whole_a scripture_n rather_o argue_v primacy_n of_o authority_n then_o of_o order_n why_o shall_v not_o we_o rather_o i●fer●_n the_o usual_a than_o the_o unusual_a signification_n especial_o since_o in_o all_o record_v we_o see_v the_o priority_n of_o the_o place_n be_v give_v to_o the_o preheminencie_n of_o the_o person_n 159._o but_o let_v we_o examine_v one_o place_n the_o 10._o of_o mat_n 2._o and_o the_o name_n examine_v of_o the_o 12._o apostle_n be_v th●se_a the_o first_o simon_n who_o be_v call_v peter_n and_o andrew_z his_o brother_n and_o so_o marci_n 3._o luc._n 6._o he_o be_v still_o name_v first_o which_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o priority_n of_o your_o order_n you_o understand_v thereby_o priority_n of_o year_n or_o vocation_n since_o s._n andrew_n that_o be_v name_v next_o excel_v s._n peter_n in_o year_n &_o be_v first_o call_v as_o s._n peter_n ambr._n witness_v on_o the_o 2._o of_o the_o cor._n 12._o and_o he_o infer_v then_o that_o although_o s._n andrew_n be_v his_o elder_n yet_o s._n peter_n be_v his_o superior_a this_o place_n make_v so_o much_o for_o this_o that_o theodorus_n beza_n although_o he_o confess_v all_o copy_n agree_v herein_o yet_o he_o will_v have_v this_o word_n first_o to_o be_v ●oisted_v in_o see_v beza_n in_o the_o annotation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 556._o as_o for_o that_o of_o the_o galatian_n where_o s._n paul_n not_o number_v or_o 〈◊〉_d reckon_v the_o apostle_n of_o set_a purpose_n as_o the_o 3._o evangelist_n do_v mention_v first_o s._n james_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o first_o he_o meet_v and_o who_o lead_v he_o unto_o the_o other_o apostle_n as_o it_o appear_v act_n 21._o i._o calvin_n see_v in_o his_o conscience_n the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n at_o which_o you_o wink_v grant_v that_o hence_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o he_o be_v first_o of_o the_o 12._o apostle_n but_o not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n 160._o as_o for_o that_o which_o you_o object_v the_o 21._o of_o the_o apocalypse_n 19_o where_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o city_n be_v describe_v to_o be_v adorn_v with_o precious_a stone_n and_o then_o you_o infer_v in_o that_o in_o the_o priest_n 19_o habit_n or_o ornament_n the_o jasper_n which_o be_v as_o you_o say_v the_o stone_n of_o benjamin_n by_o his_o place_n make_v against_o you_o if_o i_o will_v play_v the_o part_n of_o a_o cabbalist_n or_o naturalist_n but_o the_o scripture_n itself_o exod._n 28_o v_o 18_o 19_o confute_v you_o for_o there_o in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v say_v to_o be_v place_v the_o stone_n sardius_n topazius_n and_o smaragdus_n in_o the_o second_o the_o carbuncle_n the_o saphyrus_n and_o the_o jaspis_n so_o that_o we_o see_v the_o jaspis_n or_o the_o stone_n benjamin_n by_o your_o doctrine_n shall_v not_o have_v the_o first_o place_n 161._o second_o against_o my_o congruity_n allege_v for_o s._n peter_n primacy_n math._n 14._o 29._o where_o s._n peter_n walk_v upon_o the_o water_n out_o of_o which_o place_n s._n chrysostom_n homil_n 57_o and_o s._n bernard_n lib._n 2._o the_o consider_v ad_fw-la eugenium_fw-la do_v infer_v s._n peter_n prerogative_n above_o the_o other_o apostle_n you_o say_v rather_o argue_v his_o
confutation_n of_o your_o word_n when_o i_o reason_v thus_o if_o s._n peter_n can_v not_o have_v prerogative_n of_o place_n in_o that_o he_o represent_v the_o church_n no_o more_o can_v the_o son_n of_o abraham_n be_v two_o son_n in_o that_o they_o represent_v two_o nation_n here_o you_o infer_v for_o i_o but_o they_o be_v two_o son_n etc_o go_v s._n peter_n be_v s._n peter_n still_o etc_n i_o thank_v you_o for_o your_o pain_n but_o you_o do_v not_o mark_v that_o i_o do_v of_o purpose_n omit_v to_o infer_v the_o sequel_n which_o every_o one_o may_v see_v to_o follow_v but_o you_o have_v forget_v to_o have_v compassion_n of_o pour_fw-fr self_n that_o unarmed_a admit_v of_o the_o argument_n in_o that_o you_o satisfy_v i_o nothing_o therein_o but_o here_o like_o some_o rail_a minister_n out_o of_o his_o text_n begin_v to_o talk_v of_o antichrist_n who_o forerunner_n himself_o be_v 182._o to_o that_o where_o you_o say_v all_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a though_o there_o be_v order_n as_o first_o second_o and_o three_o apoc._n 21._o 19_o whence_o be_v that_o order_n fetch_v and_o derive_v but_o since_o not_o in_o the_o first_o order_v or_o age_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v therefore_o in_o the_o free_a election_n of_o christ_n jesus_n that_o choose_v and_o make_v worthy_a s._n peter_n the_o first_o that_o of_o s._n john_n 21._o 21._o ephes._n 2._o 20_o prove_n that_o they_o be_v all_o equal_a in_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o power_n of_o order_n which_o be_v equal_a to_o all_o not_o in_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n &_o that_o they_o be_v equal_a as_o they_o be_v apostle_n but_o not_o as_o they_o be_v ●ys_o and_o if_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o like_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n with_o saint_n peter_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o all_o byshopp_n shall_v have_v like_o jurisdiction_n with_o the_o pope_n for_o byshopp_n be_v say_v to_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n as_o priest_n be_v say_v to_o succeed_v the_o 72._o disciple_n who_o do_v not_o succeed_v proper_o as_o appear_v out_o of_o anacletus_fw-la epist_n et_fw-la ex_fw-la beda_n in_o c._n 10._o luc._n and_o the_o reason_n be_v give_v in_o that_o the_o 72._o be_v not_o priest_n neither_o do_v they_o erercise_v any_o jurisdiction_n which_o appear_v in_o that_o philip_n &_o james_n &_o the_o 5._o other_o deacon_n be_v order_v a●t_o 6_o by_o the_o apostle_n &_o that_o they_o be_v of_o the_o 72._o appear_v out_o of_o epiphan_n heresi_fw-la 20._o 184._o that_o admonition_n rom._n ●_o 11._o 20._o 22._o and_o that_o of_o the_o apoc._n 8._o 10._o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o if_o god_n shall_v forsake_v she_o she_o shall_v perish_v that_o be_v in_o sensu_fw-la divi●o_fw-la 〈◊〉_d in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la as_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v there_o fire_v be_v ●he_n cann●●_n final_o fall_v yet_o it_o be_v a_o far_o different_a question_n of_o the_o infallible_a decree_n of_o the_o pope_n &_o of_o the_o infallible_a residence_n of_o the_o pope_n at_o rome_n though_o both_o be_v truth_n in_o a_o diverse_a degree_n and_o both_o firm_a howsoever_o ●●pugned_v 185._o we_o do_v not_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v necessary_o endue_v with_o god_n holy_a grace_n for_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n we_o hold_v that_o he_o may_v sin_n as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o but_o we_o hold_v a_o necessary_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o define_v ex_fw-la cathedra_fw-la as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 186._o here_o you_o cite_v two_o place_n out_o of_o s._n leo._n that_o write_v in_o the_o year_n of_o sur_fw-fr lord_n 454._o accuse_v he_o that_o he_o say_v too_o much_o for_o the_o defend_v sea_n apostolic_a in_o say_v that_o he_o the_o head_n infuse_v grace_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o god_n take_v up_o s._n peter_n into_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o individual_a unity_n he_o will_v have_v he_o name_v that_o which_o himself_o be_v et_fw-fr sermone_fw-la 3._o and_o what_o he_o give_v prince_n he_o give_v by_o s._n peter_n where_o here_o first_o you_o see_v our_o religion_n be_v no_o upstart_n religion_n that_o so_o many_o year_n ago_o be_v maintain_v by_o so_o holy_a a_o father_n and_o who_o theodoretus_n in_o his_o epistle_n so_o much_o commend_v 2._o we_o se●_n this_o holy_a pope_n leo_n to_o do_v no_o otherwise_o but_o that_o which_o s._n peter_n do_v in_o his_o second_o epistle_n 1._o c._n v_o 4._o where_o he_o say_v that_o by_o the_o precious_a promise_n you_o may_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n &_o so_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n s._n peter_n be_v by_o participation_n say_v to_o be_v so_o direct_v by_o the_o ●_o trinity_n that_o his_o definition_n shall_v be_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o that_o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o not_o unlike_o be_v that_o of_o s_o paul_n i_o will_v fulfil_v that_o which_o be_v want_v of_o passion_n of_o christ._n and_o by_o the_o participation_n of_o god_n grace_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v heir_n of_o god_n coheire_n of_o christ_n rom._n 8._o 187._o and_o for_o this_o participation_n ●_o greg._n the_o 7._o say_v incline_v thy_o ●ares_n oh_o s._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n not_o mean_v thereby_o to_o ask_v any_o thing_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n or_o of_o s._n peter_n but_o only_o that_o they_o will_v be_v intercessor_n for_o us._n and_o since_o you_o conclude_v with_o this_o scoff_a epiphonema_n thus_o roar_v the_o lion_n of_o rome_n contemn_v so_o the_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o church_n i_o will_v end_v this_o point_n thus_o with_o you_o thus_o pope_n in_o a_o low_a key_n bray_v our_o a._n of_o amsterdame_n against_o the_o victorious_a lion_n of_o juda_n and_o against_o b._n leo_n his_o vicegerent_n on_o earth_n 187._o but_o now_o your_o artesmaster_n have_v teach_v you_o a_o further_a ●etch_n for_o have_v these_o word_n of_o s._n leo_n he_o think_v he_o may_v prevail_v to_o deceiv_v the_o ignorant_a reader_n if_o to_o a_o point_n of_o truth_n he_o make_v a_o addition_n of_o untruth_n and_o so_o with_o a_o colour_n he_o go_v further_a on_o and_o affirm_v that_o the_o canonist_n call_v he_o our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la glossa_fw-la extravag_n joh._n 22._o here_o the_o first_o untruth_n be_v that_o the_o canonist_n say_v as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o general_a rule_n or_o suppositum_fw-la or_o a_o ordinary_a style_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n when_o as_o yet_o there_o be_v never_o find_v any_o adversary_n of_o we_o so_o bold_a face_v that_o dare_v tax_v any_o author_n but_o one_o and_o that_o but_o in_o one_o place_n 188._o 2._o it_o be_v but_o dominum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la papa●_n our_o lord_n the_o pope_n in_o many_o ancient_a copy_n in_o which_o god_n be_v want_v which_o sound_n no_o otherwise_o then_o this_o our_o lord_n the_o king_n &_o that_o it_o be_v a_o intrude●_n corruption_n of_o the_o text_n may_v manifest_o appear_v by_o the_o manuscript_n of_o zui●…s_n the_o author_n of_o that_o g●e●●e_n yet_o extant_a in_o the_o pa●i●●●_n library_n and_o may_v be_v see_v there_o 189._o 3._o admit_v it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o ram●on_n law_n and_o in_o the_o canonist_n which_o be_v false_a yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v in_o this_o style_n though_o in_o sound_a to_o 〈◊〉_d insolent_a that_o we_o shall_v make_v he_o or_o account_n hi●_n our_o lord_n god_n for_o the_o scripture_n do_v often_o honour_n man_n with_o the_o title_n of_o god_n to_o signify_v thereby_o only_o the_o participation_n of_o his_o grace_n or_o authority_n so_o psa._n 8●_n 6._o i_o say_v you_o be_v god_n and_o child_n of_o the_o high_a all_o where_o those_o to_o who_o the_o word_n be_v revel_v be_v call_v god_n as_o christ_n himself_o do_v declare_v joh._n 10_o 35._o exod._n 21._o 6._o judge_n also_o be_v call_v go_n the_o cause_n of_o both_o shall_v be_v bring_v before_o the_o god_n exo._n 2._o ●_o and_o ●_o thou_o shall_v not_o detract_v from_o the_o god_n moses_n exo._n 7._o ●_o who_o be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o pharaoh_n 190._o as_o for_o that_o of_o deposition_n you_o seem_v to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o our_o opinion_n for_o we_o do_v not_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v at_o his_o free_a liberty_n this_o power_n to_o depose_v but_o when_o all_o other_o mean_n have_v be_v use_v and_o for_o the_o universal_a good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o when_o there_o be_v a_o hopeful_a deposition_n success_n and_o this_o doctrine_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v indirect_a authority_n over_o prince_n as_o s._n greg._n nazianz._n teach_v the_o foul_a may_v chasten_v the_o body_n when_o it_o be_v rebellious_a to_o her_o end_n so_o may_v the_o spiritual_a power_n use_v the_o
of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n that_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v a_o stone_n to_o found_v a_o pillar_n to_o sustain_v and_o a_o ●●i_n to_o govern_v and_o dispose_v 195._o and_o that_o the_o authority_n give_v s._n peter_n must_v be_v derive_v unto_o s._n peter_n surressor_n lawful_o elect_v and_o govern_v at_o rome_n i_o can_v prove_v by_o the_o express_a authority_n of_o all_o these_o father_n cite_v but_o successor_n let_v reason_n itself_o suffice_v for_o since_o our_o saviour_n do_v give_v the_o power_n of_o ●reaching_v administer_a of_o sacrament_n for_o the_o good_a of_o other_o to_o the_o ●ude_n of_o the_o world_n so_o christ_n jesus_n in_o institute_v s._n peter_n the_o head_n will_v have_v that_o pre-eminence_n derive_v to_o his_o lawful_a successor_n beside_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o peter_n shall_v govern_v all_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n since_o the_o church_n be_v to_o continue_v so_o long_o after_o go_v that_o authority_n be_v give_v to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o successor_n 196._o here_o you_o dare_v i_o to_o bring_v in_o the_o arrow_n of_o the_o father_n halberd_n of_o the_o counsel_n bullet_n of_o schoolman_n and_o canon_n of_o canonist_n in_o particular_a you_o say_v you_o will_v answer_v they_o thrasonlike_o speak_v but_o i_o know_v for_o your_o refuge_n with_o theasoe_n you_o will_v take_v up_o your_o scan_v after_o the_o manipulum_fw-la of_o dis●washers_n exposition_n of_o these_o time_n for_o your_o safety_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o no_o doubt_n so_o many_o weapon_n will_v beat_v into_o mammok_n one_o already_o disagree_v from_o himself_o and_o who_o chief_a point_n and_o argument_n ar●_n of_o themselves_o like_o 〈…〉_z unsockete_v 197._o to_o these_o place_n of_o s._n joh._n 20_o 21._o s._n math._n 28._o 19_o i_o answer_v the_o holy_a father_n have_v expound_v in_o what_o send_v these_o place_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v &_o except_o mr._n h._n a._n wili_fw-la eat_v his_o word_n i_o must_v needs_o prefer_v their_o uniform_a consent_n of_o so_o many_o worthy_a man_n before_o he_o the_o like_a i_o answer_v to_o that_o of_o the_o act_n 2._o 17._o 18._o 1_o cor._n 1._o 17._o 198._o i_o answer_v to_o your_o seem_n retort_v reason_n take_v out_o of_o the_o 1_o petri_n 5._o 4_o grant_v that_o s._n peter_n must_v feed_v his_o sheep_n only_o with_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o chief_a but_o here_o i_o say_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v either_o write_v or_o unwritten_a what_o have_v you_o then_o infer_v 199._o but_o now_o to_o speak_v something_o of_o that_o false_a malicious_a and_o odious_a blasphemy_n you_o have_v sprinkle_v through_o your_o treatise_n all_o which_o application_n if_o tediousness_n and_o respect_n of_o civility_n do_v not_o hinder_v i_o i_o can_v nail_v those_o mark_n and_o note_n of_o the_o forcrunk_a of_o antichrist_n to_o your_o forehead_n 200_o but_o it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o show_v in_o a_o word_n or_o two_o that_o the_o pope_n antichrist_n be_v not_o antichrist_n 201._o first_o then_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v antichrist_n it_o shall_v follow_v for_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n that_o hell_n gate_n have_v prevail_v against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n more_o than_o against_o the_o synagogne_n of_o the_o jew_n contrary_n to_o the_o promise_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n learned_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o s._n cyprian_n algasi●_n s._n ambrose_n s._n high_a s._n aug_n s._n leo_n and_o all_o our_o forefather_n shall_v broil_v eternal_o in_o hell_n fire_n in_o offer_v up_o homage_n to_o the_o beast_n 202._o 2._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n be_v prove_v in_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v one_o particular_a man_n i_o come_v in_o my_o name_n and_o you_o do_v not_o receive_v i_o but_o another_o come_v in_o his_o name_n and_o you_o will_v receive_v he_o where_o christ_n jesus_n oppose_v person_n to_o person_n place_n to_o place_n kingdom_n to_o kingdom_n sect_n to_o sect_n but_o the_o pope_n be_v many_o successive_o 2_o thes._n 2._o he_o be_v call_v the_o man_n of_o sin_n the_o son_n of_o perdition_n 203._o 3._o antichrist_n shall_v be_v descend_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o dan_n genes_n fuit_fw-la dan_n coluber_fw-la etc._n etc._n 49._o v._n 17._o hier._n 8._o edan_n audivimus_fw-la vocem_fw-la acutissimam_fw-la equorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n 204._o 4_o antichrist_n shall_v oppugn_v the_o myscery_n of_o our_o saviour_n joh._n 2._o who_o be_v a_o liar_n but_o he_o that_o deny_v jesus_n christ._n 2_o thes._n 2._o 2._o he_o shall_v extol_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v say_v god_n 205._o 5._o those_o 7._o mountaignes_n in_o the_o apoca._n be_v plain_o say_v to_o be_v seven_o kingdom_n none_o of_o which_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o pope_n a●●_n the_o ten_o horn_n be_v ten_o king_n cyrillus_n alexand_n oratione_fw-la 7._o in_o danielem_n 206._o to_o answer_v every_o thing_n again_o that_o you_o repeat_v will_v but_o make_v i_o more_o weary_a and_o tire_v the_o reader_n it_o be_v much_o that_o you_o grant_v the_o pope_n primacy_n to_o have_v be_v from_o the_o council_n of_o nyce_n thereby_o to_o grant_v antichrisme_n to_o have_v reign_v so_o long_o in_o christendom_n for_o the_o pope_n love_v of_o pre-eminence_n as_o for_o that_o of_o diotrephes_n that_o you_o object_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o 1_o petri_n 5._o 3._o pre-eminence_n absolute_o be_v not_o forbid_v but_o one_o secular_a pre-eminence_n with_o example_n of_o life_n and_o humility_n for_o tit._n 15._o 16_o it_o be_v say_v haec_fw-la doce_fw-la exhortare_fw-la et_fw-la argue_v cum_fw-la omni_fw-la imperio_fw-la 207._o my_o general_a reason_n you_o repeat_v thus_o the_o ecclesiastical_a hierachie_n be_v no_o worse_o govern_v they_o any_o temporal_a regiment_n for_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o a_o kingdom_n govern_v by_o one_o king_n mat._n 25._o to_o a_o primacy_n family_n well_o govern_v hebr_n 3_o to_o a_o camp_n well_o order_v cant_n 6._o but_o in_o all_o well_o order_v common_a weal_n there_o be_v ever_o require_v some_o visible_a head_n or_o judge_v beside_o the_o write_a law_n since_o there_o must_v be_v a_o supreme_a to_o take_v notice_n of_o controversy_n when_o they_o arise_v etc_o there_o must_v be_v one_o to_o explicate_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o lawe●_n to_o pronounce_v sentence_n etc_n &_o there_o must_v be_v one_o to_o compel_v those_o to_o the_o due_a observation_n thereof_o 208._o now_o since_o in_o the_o church_n there_o arise_v like_a difficult_v in_o the_o law_n explication_n etc_n therefore_o peter_n successor_n endue_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o gift_n of_o grace_n in_o all_o difficult_v of_o moment_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v to_o for_o council_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v with_o obedience_n when_o he_o counsel_v be_v to_o be_v obey_v when_o he_o proceed_v with_o his_o powerful_a jurisdiction_n 209._o your_o answer_n be_v that_o this_o reason_n be_v faulty_a from_o the_o head_n to_o the_o foot_n wherein_o you_o give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o lie_n that_o compare_v his_o church_n to_o the_o visible_a government_n and_o nothing_o so_o frequent_a in_o scripture_n there_o be_v then_o by_o comparison_n of_o terrestrial_a thing_n to_o be_v instruct_v refute_v in_o celestial_a but_o you_o must_v note_v that_o a_o similitude_n must_v not_o run_v on_o 4._o foot_n or_o agree_v in_o all_o but_o in_o the_o primo_fw-la analogato_fw-la which_o you_o can_v infringe_v 2._o you_o bring_v one_o falsehood_n to_o confirm_v another_o for_o though_o we_o say_v the_o pope_n be_v to_o explicate_v the_o law_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o above_o the_o law_n in_o your_o sense_n and_o all_o that_o you_o cite_v prove_v only_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o partial_a explicator_n of_o themselves_o ezech._n 44._o 24_o deut._n 17._o 18._o 20._o ●_o cor._n 2._o 10._o for_o as_o for_o outward_a order_n in_o difficulty_n you_o grant_v that_o priest_n lip_n must_v preserve_v wisdom_n or_o knowledge_n 211._o you_o sit_v i_o miss_v proportion_n in_o make_v many_o common_a weal_n and_o but_o one_o church_n i_o understand_v one_o universal_a church_n which_o you_o grant_v one_o invisible_a i_o have_v prove_v one_o invisible_a your_o proof_n be_v to_o small_a purpose_n for_o in_o london_n then_o we_o may_v infer_v there_o be_v as_o many_o church_n as_o there_o he_o parish_n which_o will_v be_v a_o fond_a or_o fruitless_a inference_n except_o you_o understand_v material_a church_n 212._o the_o three_o thing_n that_o you_o sit_v i_o be_o to_o prove_v and_o the_o 7._o part_v and_o last_o that_o i_o be_o to_o prove_v here_o be_v that_o the_o indeficient_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n &_o not_o in_o private_a menssence_n and_o illumination_n or_o motion_n of_o a_o unseen_a spirit_n which_o 135._o
reply_v unto_o act._n 26_o 22._o that_o in_o tradition_n nothing_o be_v speak_v beside_o that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n speech_n first_o this_o be_v untrue_a many_o of_o your_o church_n tradition_n be_v both_o beside_o &_o conntrary_n to_o the_o scripture_n as_o when_o we_o examine_v the_o particular_n will_v appear_v and_o you_o dare_v not_o subject_a your_o church_n and_o tradition_n to_o the_o trial_n by_o the_o scripture_n but_o you_o will_v have_v man_n faith_n extrinsecal_o to_o depend_v upon_o your_o church_n second_o you_o wind_v away_o by_o term_n of_o your_o own_o beside_o that_o be_v contrary_a whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v nothing_o without_o or_o except_z that_o which_o the_o prophet_n and_o moses_n say_v none_o other_o thing_n your_o allegation_n from_o 2._o 2._o thes._n 2._o be_v answer_v in_o my_o former_a write_n you_o further_o allege_v for_o tradition_n act._n 15._o 41._o &_o 16._o 4._o i_o answer_v all_o apostolical_a decree_n such_o as_o be_v there_o mention_v we_o do_v receiv_o but_o you_o decree_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v apostatical_a second_o you_o may_v see_v that_o those_o which_o they_o deliver_v be_v write_v before_o act._n 15._o 23_o 25_o 28._o etc._n etc._n you_o say_v they_o be_v uncertayn_v let_v the_o prudent_a judge_n and_o if_o so_o they_o be_v then_o be_v they_o not_o necessary_a for_o salvation_n for_o all_o such_o be_v write_v joh._n 20._o 30._o 31._o 2._o tim._n 3._o 15._o 17._o here_o you_o interlace_n 2._o other_o point_n comp●●ing_v the_o ground_n that_o we_o handle_v and_o that_o you_o do_v go_v upon_o and_o you_o handle_v they_o large_o in_o 55._o section_n i_o will_v first_o follow_v on_o with_o your_o 6._o part_n at_o s._n 153._o both_o because_o that_o be_v the_o course_n of_o our_o former_a write_n and_o the_o examine_n of_o the_o thing_n allege_v for_o your_o pope_n will_v give_v light_n touch_v these_o other_o point_n which_o also_o i_o will_v consider_v of_o after_o in_o his_o place_n the_o second_o of_o your_o assertion_n which_o now_o you_o make_v the_o 6._o part_n of_o your_o longsome_a pamphlet_n be_v that_o the_o pope_n definitive_a sentence_n as_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o indeficient_a rule_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o this_o now_o as_o a_o man_n fearful_a of_o your_o cause_n you_o 134._o have_v add_v the_o pope_n definitive_a sentence_n at_o least_o with_o a_o general_a council_n and_o this_o you_o say_v you_o be_v to_o show_v and_o we_o say_v i_o be_v ready_a to_o behold_v your_o show_n here_o i_o find_v no_o argument_n by_o you_o set_v down_o to_o conclude_v your_o assertion_n as_o be_v in_o the_o former_a point_n which_o be_v a_o other_o declaration_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o your_o cause_n heretofore_o to_o help_v the_o pope_n you_o flee_v to_o s._n peter_n prerogative_n which_o be_v they_o as_o great_a as_o you_o feign_v they_o to_o be_v yet_o as_o i_o tell_v you_o there_o be_v no_o more_o prove_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o babylon_n or_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n yet_o have_v no_o better_a ground_n you_o again_o flee_v to_o they_o and_o labour_n to_o repair_v your_o show_n of_o peter_n preeminence_n which_o i_o by_o the_o scripture_n have_v pull_v down_o and_o first_o you_o 157._o say_v that_o out_o of_o the_o whole_a series_n of_o they_o and_o the_o circumstance_n and_o not_o only_o out_o of_o each_o particular_a you_o draw_v a_o infallible_a argument_n i_o answer_v the_o particular_n i_o have_v prove_v to_o be_v by_o you_o wrest_v so_o the_o whole_a series_n and_o rank_n of_o they_o can_v conclude_v not_o hang_v sound_o for_o you_o your_o 1_o show_n be_v s._n peter_n name_v first_o i_o tell_v you_o this_o be_v usual_a but_o not_o always_o and_o to_o help_v you_o because_o you_o complayn●_n cite_v not_o the_o 〈…〉_z see_v joh._n 1._o 45._o where_o andrew_n be_v name_v before_o he_o gal._n 2._o 9_o where_o james_n be_v name_v before_o he_o mar_n 16._o ●_o where_o mention_n be_v make_v o●_n the_o disciple_n and_o peter_n so_o 1_o cor._n 9_o 5._o the_o apostle_n brethren_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o cephas_n though_o if_o he_o have_v be_v always_o first_o name_v it_o prove_v he_o not_o to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n more_o than_o the_o first_o foundation_n rev._n 21._o 19_o will_v prove_v paul_n as_o i_o show_v you_o here_o you_o 160._o boast_v that_o exod._n 28._o 18._o 19_o confute_v i_o where_o the_o jasper_n you_o think_v be_v the_o sirt_n stone_n and_o so_o not_o the_o 12._o for_o benjamin_n i_o answer_v a_o ill_a translation_n have_v deceive_v you_o for_o moses_n there_o show_v 20_o that_o the_o stone_n jaspeh_n whereof_o the_o greek_a jaspis_n arabik_n jasp_v latin_a jaspis_n and_o english_a jasper_n be_v natural_o derive_v be_v the_o ●2_n and_o last_v in_o the_o breastplate_n and_o so_o for_o benjamin_n who_o be_v the_o last_o bear_v of_o the_o patriarch_n to_o be_v grave_v upon_o exod._n 28._o 9_o 10._o 21._o this_o your_o own_o learned_a linguist_n as_o arias_n montanus_n and_o other_o do_v acknowledge_v and_o so_o correct_v your_o translation_n so_o the_o best_a of_o the_o jewish_a rabbin_n as_o maimony_n who_o say_v benjamin_n be_v write_v on_o the_o jaspeh_n misn._n lib._n 8._o treat_n of_o the_o vessel_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n chapt_n 9_o s._n ●_o and_o thus_o paul_n of_o benjamin_n have_v colour_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o peter_n you_o 159._o press_v mat_n 10._o 2._o the_o first_o simon_n call_v peter_n andrew_n as_o you_o think_v be_v first_o in_o year_n &_o first_o in_o cal_v for_o proof_n you_o cite_v ambrose_n on_o 2._o cor._n 12._o i_o answer_v first_o ambroses_n humane_a authority_n be_v no_o proof_n for_o peter_n pretend_v divine_a headship_n second_o ambrose_n say_v not_o that_o he_o be_v first_o in_o year_n put_v that_o therefore_o among_o your_o own_o tradition_n but_o math._n chrysostom_n if_o you_o will_v rely_v upon_o man_n make_v peter_n elder_a than_o andrew_n that_o which_o ambrose_n say_v be_v andrew_n follow_v our_o sav_n before_o peter_n this_o i_o hold_v true_a by_o joh._n 1._o 40._o 41._o but_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o follow_v christ_n as_o a_o disciple_n &_o a_o other_o thing_n to_o be_v choose_v a_o apostle_n as_o reason_n teach_v and_o you_o may_v read_v mar._n 3._o 13._o 14._o 16._o compare_v with_o mar._n 1._o 16._o luk._n 6._o 12._o 13._o 14._o with_o luk._n 5._o 8._o 10._o that_o andrew_n therefore_o be_v a_o apostle_n before_o peter_n i_o deny_v by_o warrant_n of_o scripture_n &_o thus_o i_o wink_v not_o as_o you_o write_v but_o with_o calvin_n i_o confess_v peter_n to_o be_v first_o of_o the_o apostle_n you_o grant_v 135._o by_o that_o i_o allege_v from_o 2._o king_n 2._o dan._n 3._o that_o such_o miracle_n as_o peter_n walk_v on_o the_o water_n prove_v no_o headship_n of_o the_o church_n so_o than_o this_o also_o you_o bring_v but_o for_o a_o show_n 3_o i_o correct_v your_o error_n in_o translate_n he_o for_o it_o in_o mat._n 16._o 18._o restreyn_v that_o to_o peter_n which_o christ_n promise_v to_o his_o whole_a church_n you_o stand_v to_o it_o 16●_n stil._n but_o first_o against_o humane_a learning_n for_o aute_n the_o feminine_a gender_n can_v accord_v with_o petros_n the_o malculine_a as_o it_o can_v and_o do_v with_o ecclesias_fw-la the_o church_n you_o plead_v also_o against_o true_a religion_n for_o i_o prove_v by_o jo●_a ●0_n 27._o 28._o 29._o that_o all_o true_a christian_n be_v invincible_a of_o h●l_a g●●●s_n and_o not_o peter_n only_o here_o you_o burst_v out_o and_o cry_n that_o if_o i_o understand_v it_o in_o the_o calvinisticall_a sense_n that_o one_o once_o justify_v can_v not_o be_v again_o the_o child_n of_o wrath_n it_o be_v you_o say_v a_o most_o horrible_a falsehood_n and_o against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n rom._n 11._o 20._o 21._o rev._n 2._o 5_o i_o answer_v i_o understand_v plain_o as_o christ_n say_v that_o his_o sheep_n shall_v never_o p●rish_v neither_o shall_v any_o pluck_v they_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n but_o he_o will_v give_v they_o e●er_o ●al_a life_n joh._n 10._o 28._o that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a the_o elect_a shall_v be_v seduce_v 〈…〉_z christ_n mat._n 24_o 24._o for_o god_n put_v his_o fear_n in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o depart_v from_o he_o jer._n 32._o 40_o and_o god_n gift_n and_o cal_a be_v without_o repentance_n rom._n 11._o 29._o and_o they_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n can_v sin_v unto_o death_n 1_o joh._n 3._o 9_o and_o these_o thing_n accord_v well_o with_o rom._n 11._o 20._o 21._o etc._n etc._n for_o by_o faith_n we_o stand_v but_o all_o man_n have_v not_o faith_n 2_o thes._n 3._o 2._o there_o be_v a_o vain_a faith_n
thus_o interpret_v the_o familist_n blasphemy_n that_o they_o be_v 1._o god_v with_o god_n but_o i_o will_v take_v s._n leo_n at_o the_o best_a second_o therefore_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o speech_n of_o peter_n be_v to_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o flee_v the_o corruption_n which_o be_v in_o the_o world_n through_o lust_n 2._o pet._n 1._o 1._o 4._o so_o that_o s._n peter_n privilege_n will_v get_v little_a hereby_o much_o less_o the_o pope_n for_o these_o grace_n have_v not_o appear_v in_o many_o head_n of_o your_o church_n but_o the_o contrary_a while_o your_o pope_n follow_v the_o corruption_n in_o the_o world_n through_o lust_n as_o yourself_o deny_v not_o so_o then_o such_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a but_o of_o the_o 44._o devil_n nature_n and_o now_o consider_v what_o grace_n they_o have_v infuse_v into_o your_o church_n but_o for_o this_o participation_n you_o say_v s._n greg._n the_o 7._o pray_v to_o s._n peter_n i_o think_v we_o shall_v have_v a_o 2._o god_n of_o he_o anon_o you_o say_v nay_o but_o that_o he_o will_v be_v a_o intercessor_n and_o herein_o say_v i_o you_o make_v he_o christ_n for_o there_o be_v as_o the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o 5._o one_o god_n and_o one_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n but_o if_o this_o reason_n be_v good_a the_o pope_n may_v kneel_v and_o pray_v to_o you_o also_o for_o if_o you_o be_v as_o you_o suppose_v a_o true_a christian_n then_o have_v you_o that_o participation_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 2._o pet._n 1._o 4._o and_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o righteous_a one_o for_o another_o even_o in_o this_o world_n 16._o avail_v much_o as_o th'apostle_n tell_v we_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o i_o think_v the_o pope_n will_v scarce_o pray_v unto_o you_o as_o he_o do_v to_o s._n peter_n whereas_o i_o say_v one_o of_o your_o canonist_n call_v he_o 22._o our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n you_o first_o 187._o charge_v i_o with_o untruth_n as_o if_o i_o say_v your_o canonist_n and_o so_o make_v it_o a_o ordinary_a style_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n i_o answer_v you_o mistake_v my_o writing_n wh●re_v you_o may_v see_v it_o say_v one_o of_o they_o but_o have_v i_o write_v as_o you_o say_v you_o need_v no_o more_o blame_v i_o for_o untruth_n than_o a_o paynim_n may_v cavil_v at_o the_o evangelist_n for_o fly_v that_o the_o thief_n reproach_v christ_n mat._n 27._o 44._o when_o it_o be_v but_o one_o of_o they_o that_o do_v so_o luk_n 23_o 39_o 40._o you_o say_v 1●7_n in_o a_o write_v copy_n in_o the_o vatican_n library_n the_o word_n god_n be_v not_o find_v but_o our_o lord_n the_o pope_n i_o rest_v in_o your_o report_n for_o the_o blasphemy_n be_v so_o gross_a as_o i_o think_v you_o be_v all_o ashamed_a of_o it_o yet_o that_o so_o it_o have_v be_v divulge_v by_o yourselves_o in_o other_o copy_n you_o can_v deny_v and_o i_o trow_v you_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o your_o pope_n be_v call_v god_n often_o they_o once_o for_o see_v what_o be_v also_o write_v clement_n in_o proem_n in_o gloss._n and_o council_n lateran_n sess._n 4._o sub_fw-la leo._n 10._o therefore_o you_o will_v help_v it_o by_o scripture_n allege_v ps._n 81._o 6._o i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v god_n etc._n etc._n i_o be_o sorry_a that_o you_o set_v yourself_o to_o justify_v all_o grossness_n our_o lord_n god_n be_v a_o peculiar_a phrase_n to_o the_o only_a true_a god_n not_o to_o magistrate_n call_v god_n by_o office_n much_o less_o to_o any_o usurper_n but_o if_o you_o will_v needs_o have_v it_o so_o let_v the_o pope_n be_v call_v god_n of_o the_o papist_n d._n stapleton_n salute_v doct_v pope_n gregory_n 13._o as_o his_o supreme_a numen_fw-la or_o god_n on_o earth_n he_o be_v not_o therefore_o of_o the_o prophet_n religion_n who_o say_v who_o have_v i_o in_o heaven_n but_o thou_o oh_o lord_n and_o there_o be_v none_o on_o earth_n that_o i_o desire_v beside_o thou_o psal._n 73._o 25._o yourself_o have_v write_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o universal_a pastor_n joh._n 10._o &_o he_o as_o i_o tell_v you_o be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n joh._n 10._o 30._o and_o you_o retract_v it_o not_o i_o know_v no_o reason_n if_o you_o hold_v this_o still_o why_o you_o may_v not_o say_v as_o the_o apostle_n thomas_n say_v to_o the_o true_a universal_a pastor_n christ_n my_o lord_n &_o my_o god_n joh._n 20._o 28._o and_o pray_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o do_v that_o unclean_a mouth_n which_o say_v ●●_o o_o thou_o that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o your_o opinion_n about_o depose_v prince_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a of_o as_o you_o 190_o suppose_v your_o mr._n the_o cardinal_n temporal_a have_v late_o write_v more_o than_o a_o good_a deal_n hereabout_o but_o i_o forbear_v to_o urge_v this_o point_n lest_o you_o shall_v think_v i_o go_v about_o to_o ensnare_v you_o i_o wish_v more_o good_a unto_o you_o for_o a_o conclusion_n you_fw-mi 191._o repete_fw-la your_o former_a scripture_n together_o for_o s._n peter_n preeminence_n i_o refer_v you_o and_o all_o to_o my_o former_a refutation_n of_o your_o show_n only_o i_o will_v answer_v where_o you_o add_v now_o somewhat_o more_o as_o you_o say_v the_o angel_n direct_v peter_n to_o go_v before_o they_o as_o their_o captain_n mark_n 16_o 17._o this_o be_v a_o palpable_a pervert_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o angel_n there_o speak_v of_o christ_n to_o the_o woman_n go_v tell_v his_o disciple_n and_o 142._o peter_n that_o he_o go_v before_o you_o into_o galil●e_n there_o you_o shall_v see_v he_o this_o which_o christ_n have_v promise_v to_o do_v himself_o mark_n 14._o 28._o and_o now_o perform_v it_o mark_n 16._o 17._o you_o false_o apply_v unto_o peter_n to_o prove_v he_o head_n and_o captain_n and_o so_o by_o peter_n feighn_v captainship_n to_o intrude_v your_o pope_n as_o head_n and_o captain_n so_o thrust_v out_o christ._n do_v ever_o man_n offer_v such_o abuse_n to_o god_n word_n as_o you_o do_v no_o better_o be_v your_o next_o addition_n s._n peter_n you_o say_v come_v first_o to_o the_o monument_n joh_n 20._o 4._o be_v this_o so_o what_o sense_n be_v there_o to_o conclude_v he_o head_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o marry_o magdalen_n be_v there_o before_o peter_n joh._n 20._o 1._o why_o do_v you_o not_o make_v her_o head_n but_o you_o falsify_v the_o scripture_n for_o it_o say_v they_o run_v both_o together_o but_o the_o other_o disciple_n do_v outrun_v peter_n and_o come_v first_o to_o the_o monument_n that_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n witness_v of_o john_n the_o other_o disciple_n that_o do_v you_o ascribe_v to_o peter_n how_o unsufferable_o do_v you_o wrest_v the_o scripture_n what_o lie_v may_v we_o think_v will_v you_o not_o preach_v to_o your_o seduce_a people_n which_o may_v not_o read_v the_o scripture_n when_o you_o write_v thus_o to_o i_o but_o any_o thing_n be_v good_a enough_o to_o help_v your_o pope_n like_o proof_n like_o prerogative_n three_o you_o add_v s._n paul_n come_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v s._n peter_n gal._n 1._o 18._o this_o have_v have_v some_o show_n if_o he_o have_v come_v to_o rome_n to_o see_v s._n peter_n now_o if_o it_o can_v prove_v s._n peter_n preeminencie_n it_o may_v have_v some_o colour_n for_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o for_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n none_o at_o all_o no_o more_o then_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v reason_v thus_o judas_n betray_v his_o master_n therefore_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n i_o think_v you_o will_v not_o grant_v the_o conclusion_n though_o it_o be_v true_a than_o you_o i_o further_a answer_n that_o paul_n there_o prove_v his_o authority_n to_o be_v no_o way_n inferior_a to_o peter_n both_o by_o his_o cal_n v_o 1._o and_o his_o behaviour_n after_o his_o cal_n for_o he_o go_v not_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o they_o which_o be_v apostle_n before_o he_o but_o as_o he_o say_v unto_o arabia_n and_o turn_v again_o unto_o damascus_n v_o 17._o then_o after_o 3._o year_n he_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v peter_n which_o be_v compare_v with_o his_o word_n and_o deed_n after_o gal_n 2._o 6._o 7._o 8._o 11._o etc._n etc._n argue_v rather_o paul_n privilege_n than_o peter_n for_o his_o go_v to_o peter_n will_v no_o more_o debase_v he_o than_o the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n who_o go_v into_o the_o hill_n country_n to_o elizabet_n with_o who_o she_o tarry_v much_o long_o than_o paul_n do_v with_o peter_n luk._n 1._o 39_o 40_o 43._o 56._o and_o now_o we_o have_v see_v your_o plea_n for_o s._n peter_n i_o will_v show_v how_o a_o man_n may_v plead_v better_o for_o s._n paul_n that_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o your_o catholic_n roman_a church_n as_o you_o vain_o call_v it_o
from_o the_o flesh_n of_o beast_n and_o fowl_n and_o to_o fill_v themselves_o with_o the_o flesh_n of_o fish_n with_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o oil_n and_o all_o such_o juncate_n their_o prayer_n be_v vain_a repetition_n of_o their_o pater-noster_n avees_z etc._n etc._n upon_o bead_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n albeit_o many_o poor_a people_n in_o blind_a devotion_n have_v i_o grant_v suffer_v many_o hard_a thing_n in_o their_o penance_n such_o as_o paul_n caleth_fw-he thing_n which_o have_v a_o show_n of_o wisdom_n in_o voluntary_a religion_n and_o humbleness_n of_o mind_n and_o in_o not_o spare_v the_o body_n colos._n 2._o 23._o so_o that_o in_o very_a deed_n there_o never_o be_v a_o more_o carnal_a please_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n as_o for_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n they_o have_v have_v their_o neck_n under_o the_o pope_n girdle_n partly_o against_o their_o will_n by_o the_o pope_n fraud_n and_o tyranny_n tread_v they_o under_o his_o foot_n partly_o by_o superstitious_a fear_n of_o the_o pope_n curse_n and_o of_o purgatory_n fire_n &_o such_o like_a bug_n wherewith_o they_o be_v keep_v in_o awe_n as_o for_o the_o pope_n they_o be_v privilege_v by_o their_o own_o decree_n viz._n that_o neither_o the_o emperor_n nor_o king_n nor_o all_o the_o clergy_n may_v judge_v the_o pope_n as_o pope_n silvester_n ●_o do_v enact_v because_o the_o pope_n be_v subject_a to_o none_o but_o god_n as_o say_v p._n symachus_n cap._n 9_o q._n 3._o aliorum_fw-la so_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o the_o scripture_n foretell_v that_o 1●_n king_n give_v their_o power_n &_o authority_n to_o the_o beast_n and_o 9_o live_v in_o pleasure_n with_o that_o whore_n and_o 3_o all_o nation_n be_v drunken_a with_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o her_o fornication_n and_o 4._o all_o the_o world_n wonder_v after_o the_o beast_n worship_v he_o and_o say_v who_o be_v like_a unto_o he_o etc._n etc._n and_o though_o the_o vial_n 16._o of_o god_n word_n wrath_n be_v now_o already_o in_o great_a measure_n pour_v out_o upon_o that_o kingdom_n of_o sin_v yet_o many_o will_v not_o believe_v that_o it_o shall_v fall_v till_o in_o 10._o one_o how●_n the_o judgement_n thereof_o come_v when_o also_o they_o will_v bewayl_v it_o but_o 20._o heaven_n and_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o prophet_n will_v rejoice_v when_o god_n have_v give_v their_o judgement_n on_o it_o these_o thing_n i_o pray_v you_o serious_o to_o consider_v of_o and_o the_o lord_n give_v you_o understanding_n part_n and_o now_o have_v do_v with_o your_o reply_n to_o the_o former_a matter_n i_o will_v speak_v of_o those_o interlace_v paragraphe_n which_o you_o bring_v in_o s._n 98._o &c_n &c_n of_o the_o vicious_a circle_n as_o you_o call_v it_o wherein_o you_o think_v we_o walk_v prove_v as_o you_o say_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n by_o the_o private_a spirit_n and_o our_o private_a spirit_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n but_o your_o catholic_a opinion_n etc._n you_o say_v you_o will_v defend_v from_o such_o a_o idle_a proof_n and_o circular_a resolution_n of_o your_o faith_n i_o answer_v first_o you_o do_v i_o wrong_v to_o set_v down_o my_o assertion_n so_o if_o you_o will_v deal_v honest_o and_o plain_o you_o shall_v express_v a_o other_o man_n meaning_n in_o his_o own_o word_n but_o you_o set_v down_o vanity_n and_o spend_v many_o line_n in_o frame_v objection_n and_o answer_n of_o your_o own_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n therefore_o to_o that_o which_o i_o say_v in_o my_o 2_o former_a write_n and_o shall_v more_o full_o set_v down_o here_o second_o i_o tell_v you_o heretofore_o ●5●_n that_o if_o i_o have_v to_o do_v with_o a_o turk_n or_o pagan_a that_o deny_v our_o scripture_n i_o will_v give_v he_o other_o ground_n but_o deal_v with_o you_o that_o profess_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o allow_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v of_o god_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o confute_v you_o by_o the_o scripture_n yet_o now_o as_o if_o you_o be_v about_o to_o turn_v turk_n you_o call_v for_o proof_n that_o our_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o you_o regard_v not_o my_o former_a conviction_n nor_o your_o mr._n the_o cardinal_n 57●_n reprehension_n of_o your_o error_n though_o you_o before_o refer_v i_o to_o he_o three_o in_o go_v about_o to_o clear_v yourselves_o of_o this_o idle_a proof_n as_o you_o call_v it_o which_o yet_o you_o can_v never_o do_v you_o go_v upon_o ground_n wherewith_o turk_n and_o pagan_n may_v be_v move_v to_o give_v credit_n unto_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o controversy_n between_o you_o and_o i_o and_o you_o lay_v down_o motive_n etc._n persuade_v to_o christianity_n which_o be_v nothing_o unto_o popery_n and_o antichristian_a tradition_n against_o which_o i_o dispute_v for_o these_o cause_n i_o shall_v not_o follow_v you_o in_o your_o range_a movable_a wave_n but_o will_v set_v down_o first_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o hold_v and_o reason_n of_o they_o second_o i_o will_v use_v some_o motive_n which_o may_v persuade_v any_o reasonable_a man_n turk_n or_o hethen_n to_o incline_v unto_o our_o religion_n rather_o than_o to_o you_o 1._o we_o hold_v all_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n to_o be_v of_o god_n full_a of_o heavenly_a wisdom_n inspire_v by_o his_o spirit_n 2._o pet_n 1._o 21_o and_o 3_o 16._o 2_o tim._n 3._o 16._o 2._o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v of_o divine_a authority_n and_o unfallible_a truth_n wherein_o the_o creature_n be_v bind_v to_o rest_n as_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o creator_n and_o sufficient_a to_o make_v man_n wise_a unto_o salvation_n many_o reason_n there_o be_v to_o persuade_v man_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v of_o god_n some_o principal_n which_o be_v from_o god_n himself_o other_o secondary_a which_o be_v from_o man_n god_n himself_o testify_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v of_o he_o two_o way_n outward_o whereby_o he_o prepare_v the_o hart_n unto_o faith_n by_o motive_n of_o credibility_n and_o inward_o whereby_o be_v assure_v the_o hart_n of_o the_o believer_n the_o outward_a motive_n be_v which_o god_n give_v we_o in_o the_o word_n itself_o first_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v a_o majesty_n wisdom_n and_o grace_n of_o writing_n differ_v from_o all_o other_o write_n in_o the_o world_n which_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n if_o it_o be_v not_o blind_a may_v see_v and_o discern_v to_o be_v of_o god_n as_o the_o eye_n discern_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n from_o the_o light_n of_o a_o torch_n or_o candle_n for_o god_n have_v show_v as_o great_a wisdom_n in_o the_o scripture_n as_o in_o the_o make_n of_o the_o world_n psal._n 19_o second_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o or_o institution_n in_o the_o scripture_n excel_v all_o humane_a doctrine_n and_o law_n as_o lead_v we_o from_o ourselves_o from_o this_o world_n &_o from_o satan_n the_o prince_n of_o it_o unto_o god_n in_o faith_n love_n holiness_n fear_n humility_n etc._n etc._n and_o these_o thing_n far_o pass_v the_o reach_n of_o any_o earthly_a creature_n natural_o to_o conceiv_v or_o comprehend_v full_o though_o he_o be_v teach_v much_o less_o can_v they_o be_v by_o man_n devise_v three_o the_o prophecy_n which_o shine_v through_o all_o the_o scripture_n persuade_v this_o for_o as_o god_n convince_v all_o heathen_n idol_n and_o god_n to_o be_v vain_a because_o they_o can_v not_o prophesy_v and_o prove_v his_o own_o sole_a deity_n by_o this_o foretell_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v &_o perform_v they_o isa._n 41._o 22._o 23._o 24._o 26._o &_o 44._o 7._o 8._o 26._o so_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o the_o prophecy_n and_o true_a event_n of_o they_o may_v be_v discern_v to_o be_v divine_a and_o of_o god_n from_o all_o other_o write_n in_o the_o world_n four_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o consent_n and_o agreement_n of_o all_o the_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a bible_n though_o write_v by_o several_a man_n at_o several_a time_n even_o hundred_o of_o year_n one_o after_o a_o other_o and_o that_o also_o after_o divers_a manner_n some_o history_n some_o prophecy_n some_o song_n some_o parable_n some_o epistle_n etc._n etc._n in_o all_o which_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v a_o harmony_n that_o no_o one_o writer_n in_o any_o place_n cross_v or_o convince_v a_o other_o of_o error_n or_o falsehood_n the_o like_a whereof_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v show_v of_o half_a so_o many_o writer_n that_o ever_o so_o agree_v together_o in_o their_o write_n since_o the_o world_n begin_v five_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o powerful_a work_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n illumine_v the_o mind_n change_v the_o affection_n sanctify_v the_o whole_a body_n sowl_v and_o spirit_n of_o man_n that_o have_v read_v and_o hear_v their_o word_n whereby_o all_o other_o false_a religion_n
his_o preface_n locorum_fw-la commu_fw-la for_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o creed_n read_v christian_n church_n ●_o motive_n 6_o motive_n the_o power_n of_o miracle_n ●_o motive_n 8._o motive_n 9_o motive_n 10._o motive_n 11._o motive_n 12._o motive_n the_o first_o demostration_n of_o the_o catholic_n truth_n the_o second_o demostration_n to_o faith_n two_o judgement_n require_v into_o what_o one_o evident_a judgement_n of_o credibilitie_n be_v to_o be_v resolvedi●_n to_z that_o this_o evident_a judgement_n be_v to_o be_v have_v before_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n in_o to_o what_o our_o certain_a mevident_a judgement_n be_v to_o be_v resolve_v into_o why_o i_o believe_v any_o article_n of_o our_o belrose_n why_o i_o certain_o and_o evident_o do_v believe_v that_o the●_n be_v commit_v no_o circle_n herein_o two_o diverse_a object_n whi●in_v our_o opinion_n there_o be_v no_o circle_n we_o be_v free_a from_o a_o circle_n see_v 1_o ●●_o that_o m_n h._n a_o do_v not_o urge_v any_o grant_v ground_n against_o 〈◊〉_d see_v 143._o that_o i_o shall_v not_o believe_v he_o himself_o persuade_v i_o m._n h._n a._n weave_a up_o in_o a_o endless_a bo●●on_n catholicis_fw-la praedic●tibus_fw-la the_o 6._o pa●●_n the_o main_a question_n may_v for_o 2d_o mr._n h._n a._n argument_n have_v be_v transfer_v how_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n &_o in_o what_o sense_n be_v infallible_a the_o catholic_n church_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n in_o manifold_a sense_n hervaeus_n interpret_v vide_fw-la n._n 165._o mat_n 10._o 2._o mat_n 17._o 1._o marci_n 9_o 2._o marci_n 4._o 33_o luc._n 8._o 51._o et_fw-la 18._o joh._n 21._o 2._o 18._o 11._o joh._n 3._o 1._o joh._n 8_o 1._o 10_o mat._n 2._o marc._n 3._o lucae_n 6._o to_o be_v name_v still_o first_o rather_o argue_v primacy_n of_o authority_n then_o of_o order_n the_o 10_o of_o s_o mat._n 2._o examine_v s._n andr._n ●_o der_fw-mi &_o call_v before_o s._n peter_n why_o s._n paul_n mention_v s._n james_n 〈◊〉_d 21._o of_o the_o apoc._n 19_o make_n against_o himself_o if_o it_o prove_v aught_o in_o reference_n to_o that_o of_o exo._n 28._o 1._o 18._o 19_o 2._o s._n peter_n walk_v on_o the_o water_n ●_o he_o be_v call_v by_o our_o saviour_n the_o rock_n so_o hervaeus_n be_v to_o be_v interpret_v ●_o 155._o ●●_o 5._o ambrose_n serm_n 6●_n gather_v out_o of_o s._n peter_n work_v of_o the_o first_o miracle_n that_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n mat._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1._o joh_n 4_o ●_o joh._n 2d_o 〈◊〉_d s._n mat._n 23●_n c._n v._n 9_o cephas_n signify_v a_o head_n and_o that_o which_o be_v the_o foundation_n to_o a_o house_n be_v in_o proportion_n a_o head_n to_o a_o body_n s._n leo._n defend_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o call_v the_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n what_o we_o hold_v of_o deposition_n proof_n out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o prove_v s._n peter_n primacy_n epistola_fw-la 1._o 2d_o lacob●_n the_o greek_a father_n affirm_v the_o pope_n primacy_n the_o greek_a fanther_n also_o affime_v it_o that_o s._n petes_n authority_n must_v be_v derive_v to_o his_o successor_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n 2_o thes._n ●_o 2._o vide_fw-la iren●um_fw-la lib._n 5._o c._n ●_o hyppolit_fw-la in_o the_o year_n 2●●_n in_o oratione_fw-la de_fw-la consummatione_fw-la mundi_fw-la d._n athams_n in_o the_o year_n 340._o quest_n 29._o cyrillus_n hierosol_n 300._o cateche_n 15._o greg._n kaz●_n orat_fw-la 14._o et_fw-la 4●_n d._n chrysost_o orat_fw-la 4._o in_o 2._o thes_n 2_o cyrillus_n l._n 3_o in_o joh._n c._n 6._o divus_o high_a q._n 11._o ad_fw-la algasi●_n my_o general_a reason_n for_o the_o pope_n primacy_n his_o answer_n refute_v they_o part_v see_v before_o a●n_n 117._o usae_fw-la ad_fw-la n._n 135._o see_v before_o ●_o 123._o see_v n._n 123._o by_o this_o h●_n will_v with_o beza_n avoid_v the_o name_n catholic_a which_o he_o can_v do_v if_o he_o graune_n the_o article_n of_o belief_n i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n see_v before_o n_o 117._o ad●_n n._n 135._o mr._n h_n a._n snatch_v but_o do_v not_o fasten_v on_o my_o motive_n the_o catholic_a religion_n ground_v nether_a on_o the_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a profit_n or_o pleasure_n not_o by_o the_o the_o policy_n of_o the_o clergy_n establish_v no●_n by_o the_o policy_n of_o the_o temporal_a the_o fearful_a resolution_n of_o their_o religion_n his_o plea_n examplfy_v to_o be_v most_o ridiculus_fw-la his_o stile_n of_o salutation_n in_o the_o fot●_n front_n of_o his_o pamphlet_n 1._o pet._n 1._o 〈◊〉_d s._n 3._o ●_o 〈◊〉_d deut_n 〈◊〉_d 31._o the_o 1._o part_n of_o your_o treatise_n s._n 7._o p._n 99_o v_o 25._o 27._o 27._o v_o 8._o 31._o 31._o ●_o tim._n ●_o 2._o 2._o s._n 8._o p._n 9●_n l._n de_fw-fr p●radis_fw-la c._n 12._o 12._o comment_fw-fr in_o mat._n 23._o s._n 9_o 9_o s._n 10._o p._n 100_o 100_o deut_n ●_o 24._o 25._o 25._o see_v pag._n 55._o 56._o 56._o s._n 11._o pag._n 100_o 100_o chrysost_n gal._n 1._o 1._o s_o ●●●_o s._n 15._o 15._o s._n 15._o 15._o isa._n 33._o 22._o jam._n 4._o ●2_n ●2_n s._n 18._o p._n 102._o 2._o part._n s._n 〈◊〉_d p._n 1st_a 1st_a job._n 38_o 1._o etc._n etc._n etc._n gé_fw-fr 22_o 11._o etc._n etc._n 2_o pet._n 1._o 21_o 21_o exo._n 20._o 21._o ●2_n ●2_n gé_fw-fr 20._o 7._o 7._o gen._n 49._o 49._o num._n 12._o 6._o 8._o job._n 4._o 16_o &_o 33_o 14_o 15_o 16._o 2._o san_n 23_o 2._o 2._o sess._n 11_o &_o 12._o 12._o s._n 10_o p._n ●02_n ●02_n p._n 100l_n 100l_n see_v pag._n 25._o 26._o 72._o 72._o as_o in_o ps._n 44._o &_o 78._o etc._n etc._n 2_o tim._n 3._o 1●_n 1●_n or_o as_o you_o reckon_v 43._o &_o 77._o 77._o mal._n 4._o 4._o isa._n 8_o 20._o 20._o 2_o thes._n 2_o 9_o 9_o s._n 23._o p._n 104._o 104._o 2_o esdr._n 14._o 21._o 22._o &_o chap._n 4._o 23._o s._n 23._o 23._o mat._n 10_o 27_o 27_o ronvere_n 16._o 25_o 26._o 26._o colos._n 1_o 23._o ephes._n 3_o 4_o 4_o 1_o thes._n 5._o ●7_n ●7_n 1_o cor_fw-la 3_o 2._o heb_n 5_o ●_o ●_o act._n 28_o 26_o 2d_o the_o 3._o part._n part._n ●_o 26_o pag._n 105._o 105._o s._n 2d_o 2d_o s._n 29._o 29._o s._n 30._o p._n 106._o 106._o see_v pag._n ●7_n 18._o 59_o ●_o 31._o 31._o s._n 32._o etc._n etc._n p._n 106._o 106._o s._n 3●_n 3●_n 34._o 34._o s._n 8●_n s._n ●5_n ●5_n joh._n 14._o 17._o 17._o mark_n 3_o 30_o 30_o s._n 36._o 36._o s._n 37._o p._n 108._o 108._o s._n 38._o 38._o 1_o cor._n 2._o 14._o ephes._n 1._o 17._o 18._o 18._o colos._n 3._o 10._o 10._o s._n 3._o 3._o s._n 40._o joh._n 9_o 22._o 22._o s._n 41._o 41._o s._n 43._o 43._o mar._n 7._o 5._o etc._n etc._n etc._n s._n 44._o etc._n etc._n to_o 54._o p._n 109._o 109._o see_v before_o in_o p._n 62._o 63._o s._n 45._o 46._o 47._o etc._n etc._n p._n 110._o 110._o s._n 54._o etc._n etc._n p_o 111._o 111._o s._n 57_o 58._o 58._o s_o 56._o 56._o pag._n ●4_n 2._o argument_n ●_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 112._o 112._o pag._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d s._n 66_o p._n 113._o 113._o prov._n 9_o 13_o 13_o pro._n 9_o 17._o 17._o ●_o 18._o 18._o s._n 67._o 67._o exod._n 20._o cru●●m_fw-la ●●am_fw-la ador●mus_fw-la domine_fw-la domine_fw-la psa._n 119._o 105._o 105._o s._n 68_o p._n 114._o 114._o s._n 69._o 70._o 71._o see_v pag._n 29._o 30._o 80._o 81._o 81._o rev._n 13._o 2._o 2._o s._n 72._o p._n 115._o 115._o s._n 80._o 80._o synecdoche_n synecdoche_n s._n 73._o 73._o s._n 74._o 7●_n 7●_n krino_n s._n 76._o p._n 116._o 116._o act._n 10._o 20._o 20._o act._n 22._o 10._o 10._o anastas_n anastas_n s._n 77._o 78._o act._n 5._o 34._o 34._o s._n 79._o p._n 117._o 117._o s._n 80._o idias_fw-la epiluseos_fw-la epiluseos_fw-la propria_fw-la interpretatione_n english_v by_o mr._n i._n a._n private_a spirit_n interpretation_n interpretation_n s._n 80._o s._n 82._o 82._o s._n 83._o 83._o s_o 85._o 85._o s_o 88_o s._n 89._o p._n ●19_n 3._o arg._n arg._n 2._o pet._n 3._o 10._o 10._o s._n 91._o pag_n 120._o see_v p._n 70._o 5._o arg._n s._n 92._o 92._o in_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v plain_o set_v do●n_o in_o the_o scripture_n all_o such_o thing_n be_v find_v as_o concern_v faith_n hope_n &_o charity_n augustine_n the_o doct_n christ._n l._n 2_o c._n 9_o 9_o s._n 94_o the_o 4._o &_o 5._o part_n after_o handle_v s._n 153._o &c_n &c_n pag._n 134._o 134._o s._n 157._o 157._o s._n 160._o 160._o v._o 20_o s._n 159._o homil_n 5●_n in_o math._n math._n s_o 〈…〉_z pag._n 135._o s_o 162_o 16●_n 16●_n s._n 164._o pa._n 13●_n 13●_n colos._n 1._o 17._o 18_o 18_o 1_o cor._n 2._o 16._o 16._o rev._n 9_o 11._o 11._o s._n 165._o 165._o s._n 166._o 166._o s._n 165._o 165._o 2_o joh._n 1._o 1_o 1_o act._n 20._o 17_o 17_o s._n 167._o pa._n 137._o s._n 168._o 168._o s._n 169._o 169._o s._n 170._o pag._n 138._o 138._o s._n